STORY
THE
SEVENTH BOOK
OF
LOST SWORDS
FRED SABERHAGEN
A TOM DOHERTY ASSOCIATES BOOK NEW YORK
Note: If you purchased this book without a cover you should be aware that this book is stolen property. It was reported as "unsold and destroyed" to the publisher, and neither the author nor the publisher has received any payment for this "stripped book."
This is a work of fiction. All the characters and events portrayed in this book are fictitious, and any resemblance to real people or events is purely coincidental.
THE SEVENTH BOOK OF LOST SWORDS Copyright © 1992 by Fred Saberhagen
All rights reserved, including the right to reproduce this book, or portions thereof, in any form.
A Tor Book
Published by Tom Doherty Associates, Inc.
175 Fifth Avenue
New York, N.Y. 10010
Tor* is a registered trademark of Tom Doherty Associates, Inc.
ISBN: 0-812-50575-1
Library of Congress Catalog Card Number: 92-858
First edition: June 1992
First mass market printing: December 1993
Printed in the United States of America 0987654321
HIS huge, work-roughened hands shaking with excitement, young
Valdemar turned up the sleeves of his farmer's shirt. Squatting on the earth
floor of his solitary hut, peering intently by firelight and fading daylight,
he reached for the long, heavy bundle that lay near the fire and began very
gradually to undo its wrappings of gray cloth. The bundle was neatly made, tied
with strong cord. As Valdemar worked to undo the knots, he did his best to keep
himself from thinking of what he might expect to find within. He told himself
he had no right to expect anything at all. But it was as if he wished to shield
himself from an enormous disappointment. . .
The wrappings loosened and began to fall away. As soon as an area
of unrelieved blackness came into view, unmistakably part of the hilt of an
edged weapon, the young man's fingers ceased to move. Like many other people,
he had a sensitivity to the presence of powerful magic, and he was already
beginning to realize just what kind of weapon he had been given.
Valdemar thought that he could feel the blood drain from his face.
Leaning his enormous weight back on his heels, he did his unpracticed best to
formulate a prayer to beneficent Ardneh.
Whatever prayer he at last managed to say went up in silence. Outside, spring
wind howled fiercely, shoving against the rough stone walls of his lonely hut,
rattling the crude, ill-fitting door, spattering rain through the hole in the
roof that served as chimney, so that the small fire, fueled mostly by last
year's dried vines, hissed as if in pain.
He had a serious mystery to contemplate.
An unknown visitor, working alone in pursuit of some unguessable
purpose, who had come and gone before Valdemar had been able to catch more than
a glimpse of him—or her—had just made the young grape-grower a present of one
of the Twelve Swords. The recipient felt overwhelmed by the discovery. And
yet—even in this tremendous moment when Valdemar first glimpsed the ebon hilt,
he found himself thinking that he ought to be more surprised at the nature of
this gift than he really was.
He had the strange feeling that he had always known, had never
doubted, that something like this—something truly great—was fated to happen to
him sooner or later.
Well, here it was. And whatever unconscious anticipation might be
keeping him from being properly astonished, he was certainly beginning to be
afraid.
Scant minutes ago, the unexpected shadow and the silent form of
the mysterious caller had moved almost simultaneously, and with a swiftness
almost magical, past the door of Valdemar's isolated dwelling, interrupting
the young man in the midst of preparing his evening meal. The door had been
left slightly ajar for more light, and to let the smoke-hole draw.
Until that moment, Valdemar had had no suspicion that any other
human being was anywhere within a couple of kilometers. By the time he had
jumped up and run outdoors, the figure of his anonymous visitor was already
almost out of sight in mist and rain. Valdemar had caught only a single
glimpse of a human shape, so muffled in gray garments that it might have been
either man or woman.
The gigantic youth had started in pursuit, swiftly bounding up
one, two, three of the narrow cultivated terraces that rose above his hut. But
by the time he had reached the third terrace, his caller had already disappeared
into the wet twilight shrouding the domesticated vines, the scant wild bushes,
and the granite outcrop-pings of the lonely mountainside.
Shouting for his vanished visitor to stop, Valdemar had continued
the chase a little farther, almost to the boundary of his cultivated land, but
without success. Returning to his hut a couple of minutes later, the young man
had picked up the bundle which had been so mysteriously deposited at his door.
He had paused to reassure himself that at least it was not alive (he had heard
stories of babies being left at the doors of lonely huts) and carried it in by
the fire. After closing the ill-fitting door again, and shaking his garments
dry as best he could, Valdemar had hesitantly begun to unwrap his present—a
process which came, moments later, to a shocked halt.
Though he was scarcely past the age of twenty, and for most of the
past year had dwelt in this lonely place, Valdemar could not claim complete
innocence or ignorance regarding the affairs of the great world.
Like every other thinking person, he knew something of the history
of the Twelve Swords, magical weapons created almost forty years ago by the
gods themselves. Valdemar knew also that two of the Swords had been destroyed
not long after they were made. This black hilt partially visible before him, if
it were genuine, might belong to any of the remaining Ten. And though like most
people he had never seen, much less handled, any of the Twelve, Valdemar could
not doubt the authenticity of this one. A heavy elegance of magic flowed into his
fingertips the instant they brushed against it; and to magic he was not a total
stranger.
It was common knowledge in the world that four
Swords—Shieldbreaker, Dragonslicer, Stonecutter, and Sightblinder—had for some
years been gathered in the royal armory of Tasavalta, under control of that
realm's powerful and unfortunate Prince Mark. Among the six others now lost to
public knowledge were the two Valdemar considered the most abominable of the
god-forged weapons, Soulcutter and the Mindsword.
No one, as he understood the case, could ever be sure of the
whereabouts of Coinspinner, a tricky blade given to randomly moving itself
about. Nor was there any way to guess the whereabouts of Farslayer, Wayfinder,
or Woundhealer. That last was the only one of the surviving ten that Valdemar
would have rejoiced to find in his own possession.
Crouching near the fire, alone with his mysterious gift, the youth
hesitated for a long time before continuing the process of unwrapping. His
irresolution was grounded in the fact that he feared certain of the gods'
Swords more than others, and at this point it was still at least theoretically
possible for him to refuse the knowledge of which one he had been given. At
this point he would still be able, if he chose, to tie up the gray cloth again,
carry the whole still-mysterious bundle back out into the rain, and drop it,
lose it, deep in some rocky crevice among the nearby crags, hoping that no one
else would ever discover the presence of the thing of power, or be able to
come near it.
For what seemed to Valdemar a long time he sat there on his heels.
The wind battering at his door seemed to mock his fearful hesitancy, while
outside the clouded daylight slowly faded. Still, enough light remained inside the hut, around his dying
fire, for him to see whatever white mark might be emblazoned on the Sword's
hilt, when his next tug at the gray cloth should reveal it.
Of course, one Sword had no white symbol at all. If that was what
he found, it would mean fate had put into his hands Soulcutter, the Tyrant's
Blade.
The young giant's eyes closed briefly. His strong, almost-handsome
face was troubled. Awkwardly he uttered words aloud: "Ardneh, let it not
be that one. I do not want the responsibility of trying to hide that demon's
Blade. Or of trying to destroy it." He understood full well that breaking
any Sword, or otherwise rendering it ineffective, would be far beyond his
powers.
"Therefore let it be any of them, except Soulcutter, or
..."
Valdemar's prayer stumbled to a halt, as he realized that for him
the second most fearful of the Blades would probably not, after all, be that
called the Mindsword. Given that one, he could simply refrain from drawing it;
for him, he thought, the power to bend others to his will would pose no great
temptation. Farslayer would be far more likely to be his downfall. There were
certain people in the world, oppressors of humanity, for whom— though he had
never met them—the youth felt a dislike that threatened always to spill over
into personal hatred; and if the life of one of those persons, wherever they
might be, should be so helplessly delivered into his hands, Valdemar feared his
own latent capacity for violence.
Yes, it would be better if he got rid of this unknown Sword at
once, not tempting himself by looking for the symbol, which it must bear upon
the hilt . . .
Valdemar's hands quivered. Because he might, for all he knew, be
holding Woundhealer, the Sword of Mercy. That glorious possibility was enough
to eliminate any thought of plunging the mysterious gift into a crevasse before
he had identified it.
After minutes of immobility, the youth with a sudden jerk stripped
back the gray cloth completely from the black hilt.
A small white arrow-symbol, pointing upward to the pommel, leapt
into view. Neither the best nor the worst of possibilities had been realized.
The weapon in Valdemar's hands was Wayfinder. The Sword of Wisdom, it was also
called—Ardneh grant it bring him that!
Valdemar breathed somewhat more easily. Toward Wayfinder he felt
timidity and awe, but no overwhelming fear. Gently he peeled away the remaining
wrappings, exposing a plain leather sheath. Without pausing for further
thought, he clasped the hilt and drew forth a full meter of incomparable
double-edged Blade. The faint light of fading day and dying fire gleamed softly
on steel smoother and sharper than any human armorer had ever crafted, at least
since the lost civilization of the Old World. Beneath the surface of the metal
a lovely mottled pattern was perceptible.
Valdemar ran a tremulous finger along the flat side of the
tremendous Blade. No, despite his youth, he was no stranger to the touch of
magic. But he had never in his life felt anything the like of this.
A happy thought struck suddenly. Some of the new strain and worry
vanished from his youthful face.
"Powers who rule this Sword," he said, self-consciously—then
paused for a deep breath, and started over. "Powers of this Sword, whoever
or whatever you may be—I understand that giving guidance is your function.
Guide me, therefore—guide me to the person—to her— to the woman I have—I have
almost despaired of ever finding. The one who is most fit, most suitable, to
share my life."
Though he was utterly alone, the young man could feel his cheeks
warming. Frowning suddenly, he quickly amended: "Let all be done in accordance with the will
of Ardneh."
Having concluded this awkward speech, Valdemar arose, gripping the
black hilt firmly in both of his great hands, fingers overlapping. Tentatively
he moved the great Blade in a horizontal circle. One direction alone, almost
straight east, set the Sword's tip quivering. At the surge of magic he cried
out, wordlessly. For just a moment the movement had become so violent that the
weapon had almost leaped free of his grip.
On a warm spring afternoon, seven days after the day when Valdemar
had unwrapped the Sword, and more than a hundred kilometers distant from his
hut, two pilgrims were making their way across a heavily wooded hillside that
formed one flank of a deep ravine.
The first of these gray-clad travelers was a woman, apparently
about sixty years of age, but still vigorous and hearty. There was nothing
feeble in the way she moved across the steep slope, among the thickly-spaced,
narrow trunks. Her silver hair was long, but bound up closely. The strains of a
long life showed in the woman's face, but no burden that seemed too much for
her present determination. Like many other female pilgrims or travelers, she
wore boots, trousers and a loose jacket, and was armed for self-defense with a
short sword.
The crowded tree trunks made it all but impossible for two to
travel side by side. The woman's companion, who walked three or four paces
behind her and carried a similarly serviceable but somewhat more impressive
weapon at his belt, was a man in his early twenties, sturdily built, of average
size. The young man's appearance, like the woman's suggested both the
weariness of long travel and a remaining capacity to deal with formidable
difficulties.
The woman halted suddenly. She frowned and squinted at the sun, which
shone brightly from beyond the canopy of the tall trees' small spring leaves.
Then she inspected the terrain, as well as she could in the midst of a forest.
"This hill curves round," she announced to her fellow
traveler at last. "And I see no end to the curve ahead. It carries us
farther and farther to the east."
"And that, my lady, is not the direction in which we want to
go," the young man responded. "Well, then. Shall we try climbing to
the top of the ridge again? Or going down into the ravine?"
The lady sighed. "Zoltan, we are well and truly lost. No
reason to think the bottom of this ravine will be more hospitable than any of
the others we've struggled through during the past two days." In those
dark gorges, the ubiquitous thin-trunked trees had grown more closely and ever
more closely together, until it became impossible for adult humans to force a
passage anywhere between them. An army of men with axes would have earned their
pay clearing a road.
"And no reason either," replied Zoltan, "to suppose
that the leather-wings are going to let us alone this time if we come out of
the trees up on the hilltop." He rubbed at his left arm, which was still
bandaged — though fortunately not disabled — from their last encounter with flying
reptiles, two days ago.
"I suppose we might risk trying the hilltop just before
sunset," the woman said thoughtfully. "If we were able to see far
enough to get our bearings — " She broke off abruptly, holding herself
motionless. Above the high canopy of leaves a silent, broad-winged form
drifted; a half-intelligent enemy, cruel-clawed and implacably hostile.
When the wind-borne reptile had drifted out of sight and hearing,
Zoltan spoke again, his voice cautiously low. "Anyway, we're soon going to
need water." Each was carrying a single small canteen. "We'll have to go
down into the ravines for that, of course. This one may be dry, but the
next—" He fell silent at the woman's imperious gesture. Her face had
abruptly turned away from him, and she was listening intently for the
repetition of a small sound just detected from ahead.
In a moment Zoltan, looking over his companion's shoulder, could
see a tall human shape, garbed in dull colors, moving among the dun-colored
trunks, still fifty meters off, approaching along the hillside.
Both travelers watched in ready silence, hands on swordhilts. The
single figure approaching seemed to be making no effort at stealth. The
towering, broad-shouldered man was clad in what appeared to be a farmer's rough
shirt and trousers and woolen vest. In both hands he gripped a long-bladed
sword with which he steadily swept the air before him. Zoltan, watching, felt
the hair stir on the back of his neck. This could be a Sword indeed!
The stranger continued moving along the slope directly toward the
pilgrim pair, though as yet he had given no indication that he was aware of
their presence.
Zoltan, staring at the approaching figure with intense, frowning
concentration, whispered: "Is that—?"
"Shh. We'll see."
Amid the dun trunks the seeker so superbly armed had approached
within ten meters of the two motionless travelers in dull gray before he saw
them. When he did, he stopped in his tracks, startled, continuing to hold the
Sword leveled in their direction. Then, looking somewhat flustered, he grounded
the bright point.
For a long moment all three remained silent.
At last the young farmer—for so his clothing made him appear to
be—said: "Greetings." His voice was soft, but the pair who heard him
got the impression that only a conscious effort made it so. "Greetings, in
Ardneh's name."
He was peering closely at the lady, and appeared to be trying to conceal
growing disappointment and confusion.
"And to you," replied the lady. "May you find peace
and truth." Zoltan at her elbow murmured similar sentiments.
"My object is entirely peaceful," the other assured
them, gesturing with an enormous hand. He seemed now to be recovering from his
initial shock, whatever might have been its cause. He was a head taller than
most men, and of massive build, his body carrying a minimum of fat. His
clothing, particularly his boots, gave evidence of an extended journey. He
carried pack and canteen, as any traveler most likely would. A long, plain,
leather sheath belted at his waist, of a size to hold his Sword, looked vaguely
as if it should belong to someone else.
He added: "I am called Valdemar."
"I am Yambu," the woman told him simply. "This is
Zoltan, who has chosen to travel with me. We are both pilgrims, of a
sort."
The young farmer nodded and smiled, acknowledging the information.
His hair was dark and curly, his blue eyes mild, flanking an interestingly bent
nose. The more one looked at him, the bigger and stronger he appeared.
"Yambu," he repeated. "Yes, ma'am." His eyes
moved on. "And you are Zoltan." Then some memory visibly caught at
Valdemar, so that his gaze went back to the silver-haired woman. "An
unusual name, ma'am." he remarked.
"Mine? Oh yes. And an unusual weapon that you are carrying
today, young sir."
Perhaps Valdemar flushed slightly; in his weathered face it was
hard to be sure. "Lady, in my hands I hope this Sword is something other
than a weapon. It has guided me here—to you. Your pardon, lady, if I aim the
blade at you again; I promise you I mean no harm."
Taking care to remain at a distance well out of thrusting range,
Valdemar lifted his Sword's point again. All three could see distinctly how the
fine blade quivered when it was leveled straight toward Yambu.
The lady did not seem much surprised. "And what desire of
yours," she asked, "does Wayfinder expect me to satisfy?"
This time there was no doubt that Valdemar was blushing. "I
see you know this Sword's name. So I suppose you know what it is. That
should—that ought to— make it easier for me to explain. As I said, my goal is
peaceful. I ..."
"Yes?"
"I am a farmer, lady. Actually I have a vineyard, which I
have left untended. And I am looking for a wife."
There was a pause.
"Ah," said Yambu at last. A thin smile curved her lips.
"And you confided this wish to the Sword of Wisdom?"
"Yes ma'am."
"And the Sword has brought you to me."
"Yes ma'am."
"And I am not quite the bride you have been imagining. Well,
rest easy in your mind, young man. Were you to make me a proposal of marriage,
I would not accept it."
"Yes ma'am," repeated Valdemar. He looked partly
relieved and partly chagrined.
"We must discuss this," said the lady, "but just
now my companion and I face problems of greater urgency. Have you experienced
any particular difficulty along the way, in the last day or two of your
journey?"
Valdemar blinked at her. "Difficulty? No. What sort of
difficulty? Oh, do you mean bandits?" The young giant smiled faintly.
"I never worry much about that sort of thing. And if there were any who
saw me, no doubt they kept clear when they saw how I was armed."
Zoltan cleared his throat. "No trouble in finding your way
through this forest, perhaps? Or in dealing with flying reptiles?"
Valdemar looked up, concerned; at the moment the sky was free of
drifting shadows. "No trouble finding my way; I simply walked the way
Wayfinder told me to go. And no reptiles of any kind; I've never seen one that
could fly."
"Any kind of trouble?"
"None. Well, several times, for no good cause that I could
see, the Sword counseled me to change direction. And once, when I saw no reason
not to move on, it kept me walking in a tight circle for an hour, so in effect
I was held in one location. But nothing that I would call trouble. Why?"
"Then would you now ask your Sword," put in Yambu
gently, "to put aside for the moment the matter of your bride-to-be, and
lead us all three safely out of this damned wildwood?"
Openmouthed, Valdemar gazed at her for a long moment. Then he
nodded.
Less than an hour later all three travelers were resting
comfortably at the bottom of another ravine, where a spring of clear water
bubbled gently out of a crevice between rocks, and the trees grew just closely
enough together to keep all sizable airborne creatures at a safe distance.
Yambu and Zoltan had already satisfied their thirst at the spring, and were now
refilling their canteens. Valdemar meanwhile had sheathed his elegant weapon
and was bringing out generous portions of dried meat and hard bread from his
pack.
Far upslope, too far to be of immediate concern, an ominous,
silent shadow drifted overhead, above the canopy of leaves; drifted and came
back and went away again, as if it were no longer certain of where its prey
might be.
"Those creatures hunt us, young man," said Yambu, almost
in a whisper. "Leather-wings—and sometimes worse than that. You say you
have never seen them before?"
"I know them only by reputation." The youthful giant looked
vaguely horrified, and at the same time fascinated. But not particularly
afraid. "Why do they hunt you?"
"I believe they are in the service of some much more
formidable enemy. Serving as his scouts. Then, too, it is my belief that any of
the Twelve Swords tends to draw trouble to itself. And that one you are
carrying in particular."
"And yet I have asked this Sword only to help me find a
bride. And now to guide all three of us to safety." Valdemar seemed more
disappointed, and gently puzzled, than alarmed by Yambu's reading of their
situation.
"You've heard the Song of Swords? You remember how the verse
about this one goes?" Zoltan asked him, and without waiting for an answer
proceeded to recite in a low voice:
"Who holds Wayfinder finds good roads
Its master's step is brisk.
The Sword of Wisdom lightens loads—"
" '—but adds unto their risk,' " Valdemar concluded.
"Yes, I've heard that song since I was a child. Never thinking ..."
The gigantic youth let the matter drop. Then he looked at the
silver-haired woman again. His gaze was timid, but resolute. "I can
remember hearing, long ago," he remarked, "of a lady named Yambu,
who was once known as the Silver Queen."
She who bore that name ignored the invitation to discuss her
past. Having finished filling her canteen, she sat at ease on the mossy bank
beside the spring.
"Zoltan and I thank you for your help, young man," she
said graciously. "Where will you ask your Sword to point you next? And may
I ask you just where and how Wayfinder came into your possession?"
Valdemar looked up at the treetops. "I still seek a
wife," he declared stubbornly. "Why this Sword has led me to you,
lady, I confess I do not understand."
"There may be an easy explanation. When the object sought is
otherwise impossible, or very difficult, to obtain directly, Wayfinder leads
its master first to the necessary means to bring the goal within reach. You may
be sure the Sword of Wisdom is not suggesting that you propose marriage to me,
who could be your grandmother. At least let us hope not. Sword or no, that
would be far from wise. Besides, I have no wish to spend my last years growing
grapes."
"Why, then, has Wayfinder brought me to you?"
Yambu shook her head. "It would seem that, somehow—I do not
know how—I can help you to achieve your goal."
Valdemar sighed. More to himself than to the others he murmured:
"I will now repeat my first request. I want this Sword to lead me to the
woman, of all the women on earth, who will be the perfect, the ideal wife for
me. Nothing more and nothing less."
And he drew Wayfinder from its sheath and held it out again in his
great hands.
Once more the point reacted, quivering, only when it was aimed
precisely at the lady.
Without comment the young giant re-sheathed the Sword of Wisdom at
his waist. Giving up the puzzle for the moment, he recounted to his new companions
the story of his enigmatic visitor, seven days past.
He concluded with a question. "Has either of you any idea who
my strange caller might have been? It was someone who wore gray, even as you
do. That's all I could really see."
Zoltan and Yambu looked at each other. Zoltan shrugged. The lady
said: "A number of ideas; but no reason to take any of them
seriously."
Her young companion nodded. "Certainly it was neither of us,
if you are thinking that. A week ago we were nowhere near the region where you
say you live. As for wearing gray, uncountable thousands of folk do that. Your
own garments have acquired something of that tinge from travel."
The bigger young man nodded ruefully. "Then can either of you
guess why this Sword should have led me to you?"
Zoltan only shook his head.
"I think," Yambu told Valdemar, "you will have to
be patient if you want an answer to that question. It may be that the answer
will never become clear, even if you do find your wife."
Valdemar took thought, running long fingers through his dark curly
hair. A sparse beard was beginning to sprout on his youthful cheeks. Then
almost shyly he inquired: "Might it have anything to do with the fact
that... as I said before, a lady with your name was once the Silver Queen? But
I had thought ..."
Yambu nodded impatiently. "Very well, my history is no great
secret. That was once my title. But I don't know why my past, good or bad,
should have anything much to do with a young man who raises grapes and seeks a
bride. You would have expected the Silver Queen to be a somewhat younger woman?
Hold Soulcutter in your hands, my friend, throughout a day of battle, and you
will be fortunate indeed if you do not look worse than I do."
Now young Valdemar indeed looked awed. "I apologize, my lady,
for what must seem unwarranted curiosity."
"No apology is necessary."
The peasant-looking youth frowned for a while at the weapon
hanging from his belt. Then he said: "Perhaps I must take the Sword's
bringing me to you to mean that I should stay with you until it tells me
otherwise. Perhaps it even means that I should turn over Wayfinder and its
powers to you."
Yambu was frowning too.
Impulsively Valdemar said: "Let us try that!" In a
moment he had unbelted his Sword, and was gallantly proffering the black hilt
in her direction, the sheathed Blade balanced flat across his forearm.
Quietly she responded: "I do not know that you have hit on
the right interpretation, young man. But... on the other hand, why should I
fear this Sword?"
Her lips moved again, almost silently. Only Zoltan, who was close
beside her, could hear her very low whisper: "Yet I do."
A moment later, she was reaching out to firmly grasp Wayfinder's
hilt.
Having accepted the weapon, and drawn it from its sheath, Yambu
stood up straight, her voice becoming a little louder. "It is a long time
since I have felt the power of any Sword in my hands. Well, Sword of Wisdom,
here you are, and here am I. If you can read my heart, show me the way which I
must go to satisfy it."
The Silver Queen held out the blade in a strong two-handed grip,
then swept it around the horizon, in unconscious imitation of Valdemar's first
gesticulation with the weapon, seven days ago.
In her hands, Wayfinder's keen point quivered at one point of the
compass only—almost straight east.
Yambu let the tip of the heavy blade sag to the earth.
She said to Valdemar: "I am favored with a definite reply.
Now, do you want me to give you this weapon back?"
To the surprise of both the others, the giant youth put both his
hands behind him, as if to make things difficult for anyone who meant to thrust
the black hilt back into his possession. He said: "My lady, I wonder
..."
"Yes?"
"Might the Sword's response to me mean that I am to stay with
you, at least for a time? Travel with you?"
Yambu thought about it. "It brought you all this way to me. I
suppose it might mean something of the sort," she conceded at length, as
if reluctantly.
"And just now, in your hands, Wayfinder pointed east. Do you
know what lies in that direction?"
Yambu smiled. "Half of the world," she said.
Zoltan, with his head tipped back, was leaning alternately to
right and left, trying to peer upward through the canopy of leaves. He said:
"Some days ago, we two were discussing the question of our destination,
the true object of our pilgrimage, in philosophical terms. Then we began to be
hunted. Being hunted limits one's time for philosophical discussion. In the process
of trying to escape from the reptiles we became lost. Valdemar, you've helped
us now to temporary safety. But as a practical matter, I must say that our next
goal, whether east or west, ought to be some place of greater security. Somewhere
completely out of the ken of those whose creatures stalk and harry us."
Valdemar looked from one to the other of his new companions,
trying to assess the situation. There was no doubting the reality of those
drifting shadows that kept reappearing no very great distance up the hill.
"And who might your enemies be?" he asked with concern.
"There are a number of possibilities," said Yambu drily.
Again she took up the Sword in both hands. "But let us not become obsessed
with safety. We are going east."
“HURLED to the ends of the earth, you say” Astride a demon?" The speaker, a
startlingly handsome and apparently very youthful man, gave every indication
that he found the prospect hugely amusing.
"Yes, to the ends of the earth, or farther for all I know.
That was months ago, of course, and neither the Dark King nor his demonic steed
have been heard from since." The youthful-looking man's informant, a
short, blond woman or girl who appeared even younger than he, flashed a bright
grin of her own. "Is it not entertaining, Master Wood?"
The two who spoke with such apparent carelessness of sorcerer's
and demon's fate were standing casually just outside the massive outer wall of
the world headquarters of the Blue Temple. The man was actually leaning against
the building's stones. Squat granite columns, each thicker than the length of a
man's body, and broad stone steps leading up to doors worthy of a fortress made
the establishment an archetype of the substantial, or perhaps even a parody of
such. The two appeared to be waiting for something; but what that might be, or
why they had chosen this spot to hold their talk, was not immediately obvious.
The handsome young man nodded. His large, athletic- looking body was well
dressed in tunic and cloak of rich fabric, though of no outstanding elegance.
He might have been a prosperous merchant, or perhaps a physician. Surely not a
warrior, for no trace of any material weapon was visible about his person.
He said: "Entertaining, yes. The demon was hurled away, I
suppose, by the Emperor's name in the mouth of the Emperor's bastard, and that
poor pretender of a magician, who likes to ride on demons, was whisked away
helplessly with his mount—"
The young man laughed again, louder than before, and this time his
companion laughed with him. She was garbed in a tight-fitting outfit of silver
and blue that showed off her fine figure to advantage; the clothing suggested
an expensive courtesan. The heads of passers-by turned in their direction; such
merriment was uncommon here in the Blue Temple precincts.
Both parties to the conversation ignored the passers-by, even as
they appeared to be ignoring the Blue Temple itself. But he who had been
addressed as Master Wood soon sobered from his laughter. He stroked his chin in
thought.
Almost wistfully he said: "And yet, Tigris—an alliance with
Vilkata might well have been to our benefit."
Tigris had already assumed a more thoughtful expression too. She
responded: "He may be able to return, Master, sooner or later. Or, if he
cannot come back unaided, we might help him. That may still be possible. Yet, I
fear that the Dark King was—or is—something of a bungler. Considerable skill in
handling demons, one must admit that."
"Considerable. But finally insufficient," amended the
other.
"Yes, Master, as I
say—finally insufficient."
The shapely young woman nodded soberly. "And one of the Swords went
with Vilkata."
"Yes, Master. The Mindsword, as you well know."
Wood allowed his displeasure at that accident to show. He had
particularly coveted that weapon for his own. Then he brightened slightly.
"Well, none of that can be helped now. Today we face other problems, quite
sufficient to claim our full attention for a tune."
"As you so accurately say, my lord."
In the bustle of the populous city, even a pair of such striking
appearance did not draw a great deal of attention. Once or twice a beggar
started to approach them, then, as if warned by some instinct, veered away.
Once a sedan chair, guarded on both sides by a file of mounted
men, passed very close to them, entering the Blue Temple headquarters through a
nearby gate.
The man called Wood appeared equally indifferent to potentate and
mendicants. "So," he mused, "our erstwhile rival Vilkata, the
Dark King, is probably not going to be available in the foreseeable future to
discuss alliances. Nor is the demon who bore him away into— ought we to say
into eternity? Nor, I suppose, can we hope to recruit any other demons from the
Dark King's retinue." Wood's voice became abstracted. "That's all
right, though—I can summon powers enough of my own whenever there's a
need."
"Yes, Master, certainly you can." Impish little Tigris
nodded violently.
Squinting at her, her master thought to himself that she was
almost certain to prove something of a distraction in the staid Blue Temple
offices, into which he planned to bring her very soon. Very likely, Wood considered,
he would have to dismiss Tigris—or else effect a drastic though temporary
change in her appearance— before the conference got very far. But that decision
did not have to be made now.
The girl began to fidget, as if rendered uncomfortable by an
overabundance of energy. She moved a step away, and with a dancing glide came back again.
"If it is permitted to ask, Master, why are we waiting? Are those
moneybags in the Blue Temple expecting us at a particular time?"
The young man grinned. He was not really a young man, for even now
his eyes looked very old. "My dear Tigris, they are not expecting us at
all. I expect that an unannounced arrival will produce a more co-operative
attitude on their part, once they have recovered from their initial . . .
yes?"
This last word was not addressed to Tigris, but to a sudden
blurring of the atmosphere approximately a meter above her blond head. Out of
this miniature aerial vortex proceeded a tiny inhuman voice, speaking to Wood
in squeaky, deferential tones:
"The man Hyrcanus is now alone, Master, inside his private
office. Do you wish me to accompany you inside the building?"
"Yes, but see that you remain invisible and impalpable in
there. Unless, of course, you hear me suggest otherwise." Wood was
standing erect now, the air of indolence having fallen from him like a shed
cloak. "Tigris?"
The disturbance was already gone from the air above her head.
"Ready, as always, Master."
Wood gestured, and their two human bodies instantaneously
disappeared.
The locus of their reappearance a moment later was a tall, narrow,
dimly lighted chamber deep in the bowels of Blue Temple headquarters. Though
the room was obviously only an anteroom of some sort, the visitors found it
elegantly furnished, with a thick carpet underfoot. The walls were paneled in
exotic wood, subtly lighted by Old World lamps that burned inside their glassy
shells with a cold and practically inexhaustible secret fire.
Wood and Tigris came into existence standing side by side and almost hand in
hand, before a cluttered desk behind which a male clerk or secretary looked up
in petrifaction at their unanticipated presence.
The thin man in a tunic of blue and gold stared at them
uncomprehendingly, his eyes watering as if from long perusal of crabbed handwriting
and columned numbers. Even now, in what must have been a state of shock, the
words that fell from his lips were trite; perhaps it had been a long, long time
since he had spoken any words that were not.
Clearing his throat, the clerk said in a cracked voice:
"Er—you have an appointment?"
Wood smiled impishly. "I have just made one, yes."
"Er—the name, sir? Er—madam?"
"I'm hardly that." And Tigris giggled.
The assured, undeniable presence of the pair seemed to place them
beyond the scope of any fundamental challenge.
"I will see ... I will ... er ..." Almost choking in
confusion, the clerk bowed himself away through a door leading to an inner
office.
The two visitors exchanged looks of amusement. A few moments later
the thin man was back, ushering Wood and Tigris into the next room. There they
confronted the Chairman of the Blue Temple himself, a man known to the world by
the single name of Hyrcanus.
Here, in the inner sanctum of power, the furnishings were more
sumptuous, though still restrained, their every detail tastefully thought out.
Wood had expected nothing more or less, but Tigris was somewhat surprised.
"I thought to see more gold and jewels," she murmured.
Wood shook his head slightly. He understood that splendor here would have been
out of place; the finest appointments could have done no more than hint at the
immensity of the temple's wealth.
The Chairman was small, rubicund, and bald, with a round ageless face and a
jovial expression belied by his ice-blue eyes. He was seated, flanked by ivory
statues of Midas and Croesus, behind an enormous desk, engaged in counting up
some kind of tiles or tokens. A large abacus, of colored wood in several shades,
stood at the Chairman's elbow. The walls of the chamber were lined with account
books and other records, some of them visibly dusty. Spiders had established
themselves in at least two of the room's upper corners. The windows were
barred, and were so high and dark that it was impossible for ordinary human
eyes to see outside.
Raising his gaze from his desk, Hyrcanus stared at Wood in utter
blankness for a long moment. His eyebrows rose when he looked at Tigris. Then
he snapped irritably at his visitors: "Who are you? What are you doing
here? I have made no appointment for this hour." "But I," Wood
retorted, "have made one to see you." Such a response, from an utter
stranger, evidently could not be made to fit into the Chairman's view of life's
possibilities. Hyrcanus fixed a stern gaze upon his shaken underling, the thin
clerk who still hovered near. "What possessed you to schedule an
appointment at this time?" The man's fingers fumbled with imaginary knots
in the air before him. "Sir, I—I have scheduled no appointment. I thought
perhaps that you had done so privately. I have no idea who these people
are."
"My name is Wood," said the male visitor in a languid
voice, speaking directly to Hyrcanus. "I should think it almost impossible
that you have not heard of me."
The name took a moment to sink in. Then, with a slight movement of
one foot beneath his desk, a gesture quite imperceptible to ordinary visitors
(but noted at once by these two callers, and dismissed as harmless), the
Chairman sent a signal.
Wood made a generous, open-handed gesture. "By all
means," he encouraged, with a slight nod. "Summon whatever help will make you
feel secure." Tigris, at her master's elbow, giggled. It was a small
sound, almost shy.
In response to the Chairman's urgent signal, there ensued a
subtle interplay of powers within the chamber's dusty air, much of it beyond
the reach of the Chairman's senses, or those of his secretary. Powers charged
with the magical defense of this room and edifice clashed briefly, trying immaterial
lances, with the invisible escort of the two human visitors. The trial was
brief but quite conclusive: the defenders of the Temple retreated, cowed.
Moments later came sounds of hurried human movement in an
adjoining room. A door, not the one through which the callers had come in,
opened quietly, and another bald man, this one obviously elderly, looked in
with a wary expression.
"I assume," Tigris said to him, smiling brightly,
"that you must be the Director of Security?" She almost curtsied.
The newcomer glanced at her, frowned, and kept silent, looking to
his chief for orders.
"I would like to know," Hyrcanus grated at him,
"how these two got in here."
The man in the doorway cleared his throat. "Sir, I recognize
this man as the well-known wizard, Wood. The woman with him—"
"He has already told me his name," Hyrcanus interrupted.
"What I want to know is how—"
"And someday perhaps I will tell you how we got in,"
said Wood, interrupting the interrupter. "But there are other matters I
wish to discuss first."
The Director of Security, seemingly unimpressed, stared at his
fellow magician. "I know your name, and I warn you that you had better
leave. At once."
"You? Warn me?"
The elder nodded impressively. His face had become lugubrious. "I am
indeed the Director of Security here. We here do not fear your powers."
Wood's eyes were twinkling dangerously. "Only because you do
not comprehend them."
"I believe," the Director remarked drily, "that you
are the same Wood who about two years ago visited Sha's Casino, a Red Temple
establishment in the city of Bihari." "And so?"
"On that occasion—correct me, sir, if I am wrong— you
encountered certain enemies and were forced to make a swift retreat. It has
further come to my attention that you entered Sha's Casino armed with the Sword
Shieldbreaker, and that you left without that weapon— and lacking any
compensation for it." The elderly man in the doorway smirked faintly.
Tigris, looking at her master, paled a trifle.
Wood put his fists on his hips. His voice was ice. "On that
occasion, my man, I was opposed by forces well beyond your ability—let alone
that of your money-grubbing masters here—to understand, much less to deal
with."
A moment of silence followed. It was plain from their expressions
that Wood's current hearers—except for Tigris, of course—remained unconvinced.
The wizard nodded briskly. "Very well, then. I see that a
demonstration will be necessary."
The Director's expression became uncertain.
Hyrcanus behind his desk started to say something, then remained
quiet.
Silence held for a long moment.
Wood's eyes closed. His left hand extended slightly in front of
him, palm upward. The long ringers quivered. Then the hand moved, and the
forearm, slowly, made a gentle lifting gesture. Near the high ceiling an almost imperceptible turmoil in
the air grew briefly, lightly sharper.
In moments this gentle disturbance was answered by a much heavier
vibration. An inhuman groaning and thudding seemed to start in the roots of
the huge building and progress slowly upward. Soon distant frightened yells
could be heard, rising from somewhere below the thickly carpeted office floor.
Tigris was smiling faintly now, watching the Blue Temple men for
their reaction. Neither of them had moved, though the eyes of the Chairman
seemed about to pop.
Wood's face, his eyes still closed, had hardened into an
implacable mask.
The door to the secretary's anteroom burst open, to frame the
large form of an armed guard officer. "Sir! The gold—" The man had
trouble finishing his sentence.
Hyrcanus snapped: "What of the gold?"
The guard turned halfway round, gesturing over one beefy shoulder.
"It's—coming—up the stairs—"
The Chairman leapt up from his chair, trying to see out past him.
The deepest rumbling, which had begun down around the massive,
vaulted foundations of this Mother Temple, was now gradually shaping itself
into a heavy, metallic rhythm. It sounded like a company, perhaps a regiment,
of heavy infantry, clad in armor, marching upstairs in close formation.
There were continued cries of alarm, and more security people came
pressing up behind the officer in the doorway.
Hyrcanus started to come around from behind his desk, and then
went back.
The guards now crowding the doorway were pushed aside. But not by
human force.
Bursting past them, into the Chairman's private office, came
moving gold, coins and bars and works of art, all moving as if alive. The yellow treasure had
somehow been conglomerated, magically held together, into the shape of a huge
and heavy many-legged creature, a gigantic centipede. At intervals this
animation broke apart into separate marching figures, all headless, some in the
shape of men and some of beasts. Whether in the form of many bodies or only
one, the gold tramped upward and forward, the several shapes enlivened by
Wood's magic all glowing dull yellow in this chamber's parsimonious light.
The Director of Security, jabbering incantations, avoided the
score of trampling golden legs. Gesturing, he intensified his magical efforts
to undo what Wood was doing.
But it was obvious to all that the Director's attempted
counterspells were failing miserably. Losing his temper, he rushed at his
rival.
That was a serious mistake.
Halfway toward the object of his wrath, the Director slowed, then
staggered to a halt. It was as if he had forgotten where he was going. Worse
than that, it was as if he had almost forgotten how to walk.
Turning now to Hyrcanus, and then to all the others in the room, a
smile of infantile imbecility, the Director of Security sank slowly into the
nearest chair. Simpering vacuously at nothing, he appeared ready to be entertained
by whatever might happen next.
His eyes lighted on the inexorably marching metal.
"Gold," the old man whispered, obviously delighted. "Pretty,
pretty."
Meanwhile Wood, his arms folded, had turned away from the Director
and sat down on the edge of Hyrcanus's desk. He was watching the proceedings
with an abstracted look, as if he were not personally very much involved.
Tigris, taking her cue from her master, was now seated also, in a leather
chair. From a purse that had appeared as if from nowhere she had actually brought out
some knitting, with which she appeared to be fully occupied.
With the intrusion of the marching gold, and the ruthless
disabling of his first assistant, Hyrcanus abandoned all pretense of calm
control.
He jumped up onto his desk. With screams he rebuked his Security
forces.
Then he turned to Wood, pleading: "Put the gold back! Send it
back at once!"
"And you will listen to me if I do?"
"Of course, of course. And this fool here"—the Chairman
indicated his chief aide, now smiling as he counted up his fingers—"can
you restore him to what ordinarily serves him as his right mind?"
"If you will listen."
"I will. I swear it, by Croesus and Midas. What was it you
wanted to discuss?"
Accepting this surrender graciously, Wood slid off the desk and
with a few gestures quickly restored Blue Temple headquarters more or less to
normality. The weird upward progress of long-hidden treasure ceased. The
marching golden centipede and all its fragments, immediately obedient to
Wood's most subtle command, reversed direction, and headed docilely downstairs.
And at the same time the Director lost his carefree interest in his own fingers;
his eyes closed and his head sank slumberously upon his chest.
Within moments after the tramping treasure had retreated, the
building ceased to vibrate. Inside the Chairman's office only the shouts of
guards, somewhere in the middle distance remained as evidence that something remarkable
had occurred.
Slowly, shakily, Chairman Hyrcanus resumed his seat behind his
desk. He wiped his brow. With a gesture and
a few muttered words, he offered Wood and Tigris
chairs. The three were now alone.
With the opposition satisfactorily crushed, Wood was calm and
reassuring. He glanced at the Director, who was snoring faintly. "He will
regain his wits—such as they were." Then Wood focused an intense look on
the Chairman. "Hyrcanus, understand me. Your wealth is safe, for the time
being—safe from me, at least. Every coin is now back where it was. I do not
crave Blue Temple gold, or any other treasure you may possess."
Hyrcanus, smiling glassily, murmured an excuse. Then, turning away
momentarily, he beckoned the clerk to him from the next room, and dispatched
the man with orders to take a complete inventory of the wealth down below.
Wood shook his head impatiently at this interruption. "Depend
upon it, Hyrcanus, not a gram of your metal will be missing. I am not your
enemy. Rather we have enemies in common, and therefore should be allies."
The Chairman brightened a trifle. "Yes. Enemies in common.
Certainly we do."
Tigris had put aside her knitting, and was now sitting with folded
hands, paying close attention to the men.
Her master said to Hyrcanus: "I am thinking in particular of
Prince Mark of Tasavalta. I suppose you may rejoice almost as much as I do over
his recent misfortunes."
The Chairman, relaxing just a little, nodded heartily.
His formidable visitor said: "I am told that Mark is making
every possible effort—so far to no avail—to heal his wife of the injuries she
sustained last year."
"A pity," said Hyrcanus, and uttered a dry sound
intended for a laugh.
"Indeed. My agents assure me that Princess Kristin is
hopelessly crippled, and in continual pain. The only real hope of ever helping
her lies in the Sword Woundhealer."
Mention of the Sword concentrated the attention of the red-faced
man behind the desk. "Ah. And where is Woundhealer now?"
Wood's eyes twinkled again. "Your question brings us to the
very point of my visit. The best hope of anyone's getting Woundhealer in hand
lies in the Sword Wayfinder—would you not agree?"
Hyrcanus responded cautiously. "It is said that Wayfinder can
guide its holder to any goal he wishes."
"Even, as has happened at least once in the past, into the
deepest Blue Temple vaults of all... but I have no wish to remind you and your
associates of past sufferings and embarrassments. Hyrcanus, I have come here to
offer you a partnership."
"What sort of partnership?"
"The details can be worked out later, if you will agree with
me now in principle. You were already Chairman of the Blue Temple nineteen
years ago, at the time of the great robbery. I believe I am correct in thinking
that you and other insiders still consider that the worst disaster that your
Temple has ever suffered?"
The Chairman's face grew somewhat redder. "Let us say, for
the sake of argument, that you are right—what then?"
Wood put on a sympathetic expression. "And Ben of Purkinje,
the wretch who was chiefly responsible for that calamity, still lives and
prospers, as the right-hand man of our mutual enemy Mark of Tasavalta."
The Chairman nodded gloomily. Ever since Mark had become Prince of
that generally prosperous domain, there had been no new Blue Temple
installations at all in Tasavalta—the organization maintained in that land only
a single banking facility, relatively unprofitable, in the capital city of
Sarykam.
Tigris so far had been maintaining a demure demeanor, so it had
not become necessary for Wood to banish her, or take any steps to alter her appearance.
Brightly and alertly she continued to pay attention to everything that was said
and done between her master and their reluctant hosts.
Genial-sounding Wood now inquired after the health of legendary
Old Benambra, founder an age ago of the Blue Temple.
Hyrcanus assured his guests that the Founder ("our Chairman
Emeritus, in retirement") was still very much alive—more or less alive, by
most people's standards, since he was now turned completely into a Whitehands,
and lived underground somewhere, jealously counting up the bulk of his
remaining treasure. Then the current Chairman, supremely stingy unless he made
an effort not to be, belatedly ordered some refreshment to be served.
Presently—while the Director of Security by stirrings and mumblings gave
indications that he might soon awaken—Wood smoothly returned to the subject of
the Sword of Wisdom. "You, the Blue Temple authorities, have certainly
known for a long time that Wayfinder was used by those daring thieves to
despoil your hoard." "Well . . . yes."
"For years you have been keeping a jealous watch for that
Sword in every quarter of the world, ready to try to seize it as soon as it
should appear again."
The Director of Security, had by now risen and stretched and
finally re-settled himself in a chair at a little distance, much chastened in
his manner. Whether he was aware of what had just happened to him or not, he
was evidently grimly determined to keep an eye on Wood as long as the intruder
remained.
Now the Director said: "Wayfinder's vanishing, as you
probably know, was utterly mysterious. The only report we have—admittedly
unconfirmed—says that the Sword of Wisdom was stolen, by some unknown agent,
from the belt
of the God Hermes, after he had been struck down by Farslayer."
Everyone in the room was silent for a moment, no doubt meditating
on that unlikely-sounding but undeniable event.
"Yes. I know," Wood answered patiently. Though he had
not been personally present at the fall of Hermes, he stood ready to accept
that story as confirmed.
The slight jowls of the Chairman of the Blue Temple were
quivering. "The treasure we lost at that time, including three Swords,
has never been recovered."
"I know that too." The handsome, youthful-looking Wood
was now doing his best to soothe his hosts. Tigris looked sympathetic too. Wood
continued: "How unjust, how odious, that the robbers should have been able
to prosper as they have."
"Odious is an inadequate word," said Hyrcanus fervently.
"But let us get down to business."
Wood, with a smile and gesture, indicated that he was perfectly
ready to do just that.
The official inquired: "What exactly do you want from the
Blue Temple, that you have taken these, uh, drastic steps to bring about this
conference?"
Wood smiled. His answer was straightforward, or at least it seemed
to be: "I want no more than I have already indicated. A chance to use
Wayfinder for my own purposes, which will in no way conflict with yours. A
league of mutual assistance against Tasavalta. And against the Emperor."
Blank looks on the faces of the Blue Temple functionaries greeted
Wood's last assertion. He was silently contemptuous of their ignorance, but
not really surprised. The Blue Temple evidently knew little about the Emperor,
and seemed to care less. Or perhaps their lack of interest was only feigned.
Like the Ancient One himself, they must be aware of certain recurrent rumors,
concerning the
enormous treasure that potentate was reported to have stashed away.
But the problems posed by the Emperor could wait. Spelling out his
proposal in a straightforward way, the wizard confirmed that he wanted to be
informed as soon as any of the Blue Temple people had any knowledge, or even a
clue, concerning the whereabouts of the Sword of Wisdom.
"I am aware that you have had your people on the alert,
everywhere around the world, or at least across this continent, for years now,
for any evidence concerning that Sword. No matter what kind of defences you
devise for your vast remaining treasure, Wayfinder can probably find a way to
let another bold and clever robber in."
Hyrcanus groaned audibly.
Less than half an hour later the meeting concluded, with Wood and
Hyrcanus shaking hands, while their respective aides looked on watchfully. Both
leaders pronounced their satisfaction with the agreement they had reached.
Outside Blue Temple Headquarters again, their removal having been
effected without the use of any mundane door, Wood and Tigris strolled the
streets in silence, until they were rejoined by the demon Dactylartha.
"Noble masters!" hissed the tiny voice, coming out of
the barely visible disturbance in the air. "Was my performance
satisfactory?"
"At least you will not be punished for it." Wood spoke
abstractedly, his main thought already elsewhere.
"Madam Tigris!" Dactylartha pleaded softly. "Did I
not do well?"
"As our Master has said," she responded curtly.
"Did your old rulers recognize you, do you suppose, Dactylartha?"
This terrible creature, she remembered, had once been Blue Temple
property, involved in the famous robbery, on which occasion the demon had
failed as dismally as all the other layers of defense of the main hoard. That
did not mean, of course, that Dactylartha was weak or ineffective. Against any
one of the Swords, only failure could generally be expected—unless, of course,
one was armed with another Sword.
A dangerous being to recruit; Tigris, though her own skills in
enchantment were great, was not sure she could have controlled the thing
without her Master's help.
Wood, now giving the thing its new orders, curtly dismissed it,
and in a moment it was gone.
"What are you thinking about, my dear?" the Ancient One
inquired. "You look pensive."
"About demons, Master."
"Ah yes—demons. Well, as a rule, one kills them, or has some
firm means of control—or is as nice to them as possible. That is about all
there is to know on the subject." And Wood laughed, a hissing sound that
might have come from the throat of one of the very creatures he was
contemplating.
Tigris changed the subject. "Which of the Twelve Swords would
you most like to possess, Master?"
"Ah. Now that—that—is indeed a question." The Ancient
One mused in silence for a few paces. Then he said to Tigris: "There's
Soulcutter, of course. I certainly wouldn't want to draw that little toy with
my own hands—having heard what has happened to others—the trick of course would
be to get someone else to draw it, under the proper circumstances."
"I understand perfectly, my lord."
"Do you? Good. As for the Sword of Wisdom, I confess to you,
my dear, that I nourish a certain hope—that on coming into possession of that
weapon I will be able to use it to lead me to the Emperor."
Tigris wondered briefly whether she ought to pretend to be
surprised. In the end she decided not to do so. She asked, instead: "What
Swords does the Emperor have?"
"None, that I can determine with any certainty."
Tigris, flattering: "Then of the two greatest magicians in
the world, neither now has any Sword."
It was true that her Master, Wood, at the moment had not a single
Sword to call his own—while Prince Mark of Tasavalta, gallingly, had no less
than four.
Tigris was taking great care not to remind her Master directly of
this latter fact.
He grunted something, for the moment sounding completely human—a
mode of existence he did not always appear to favor.
"Where to now, Master?"
"To a place where I trust we will not be interrupted, Tigris.
We have work to do."
MORNING had arrived, and Ben of Purkinje was enduring an enormous
headache.
He sat up slowly, further tormented by a fierce itching. Particles
of the hay in which he had been sleeping had worked their way into his
clothing. According to the feeling in his head, the hour ought not to be much
past midnight, but the exterior world ruthlessly assured him that a new day had
indeed begun. The cavernous interior of the barn in which he had sought shelter
was now becoming faintly visible, venerable roughhewn beams and gray wall
planks bathed in an illumination that could only be that of dawn. Intermittent
crowing noises now issuing from the adjacent barnyard offered confirming
evidence.
The noises were there, but Ben was reasonably sure that they had
not awakened him; they were completely routine, and he had been too deeply
asleep to be roused by anything so ordinary.
Too deeply asleep indeed. Unconscious, he thought, would be a
better word for it. Recalling some of last night's adventures in the local
tavern, he wondered if the second or third girl to sit on his lap might have
put something unfriendly in his ale. The first, as Ben recalled, had been almost unconscious
herself at the time, and he thought he could exclude her from the list of
suspects.
He doubted that any of last night's girls would have played a
dirty trick like that on her own accord. Someone would have put her up to it.
Ben clenched his eyelids shut again. His memories of last night
were somewhat hazed. He went prowling through that fog, in search of his
newly-met drinking companions. They had been three or four youngish men, who
had had the look of bandits—or, if not bandits, of people who had no higher
moral standard than they found absolutely necessary for survival. A couple of
them, perhaps not realizing what a formidable opponent they had encountered,
had challenged Ben to a drinking contest. Before that had been carried to a
conclusion, the tavern girls had taken a notion to sit on his lap, first in
sequence, then together ... or had that been his own suggestion?
but of course nothing could be done about any of that now. If in
fact someone had tried to drug his drink, he had survived the effort. This was
morning, and at least it wasn't raining—he would have heard that on the barn
roof. Trouble was, the first subtle indications of this fine spring morning
were that things were not going to go well today for Ben of Purkinje, known in
recent years as Ben of Sarykam. Right now he feared that his headache might be
the least of today's problems, because certain sounds outside this borrowed
barn were like those of no ordinary farmyard in the early morning. These were
the noises, he now felt sure, which had awakened him.
These ominous mutterings and footfalls evoked for Ben the presence
of a number of men, maybe half a dozen or even more, clumsily exchanging
low-voiced words with undertones of urgency. Muttering, and then separating,
spreading out, moving quickly but quietly as if they meant to get the barn
surrounded.
That was not at all a reassuring image.
Getting off to a bad start as he seemed to be this morning, Ben
hoped that no one today was going to call him by any name that mentioned either
Purkinje or Sarykam. As soon as anyone did that, he would know that the false
identity under which he was currently traveling had been penetrated. Not that
he had much hope for the false identity anyway. It had been a resort of desperation,
conceived on the spur of the moment several days ago, when other plans had at
last gone desperately and completely wrong. A man who weighed close to a
hundred and forty kilos, and looked capable—and was—of twisting a
riding-beast's iron shoe into scrap with his bare hands, tended to attract
attention. For such a man, ordinary disguises were seldom of much avail.
Ben's worst suspicions were presently nourished by new evidence.
If he had been in the least danger of drifting back to sleep—and with a start
he realized that he just might have been—that peril was destroyed by a loud
call in a hoarse male voice, coming from somewhere not far outside the barn.
The words were meant for him. The man outside was threatening to fire the
wooden structure if he didn't immediately come out and surrender.
The bass roar was almost instantly repeated: "Ben of
Purkinje! We know yer in there!"
Despite the beseiged man's huge size, he came up to his feet
softly and promptly amid the hay, the wooden floor of the hayloft creaking
under the shift of weight. At the same time he took a quick inventory of
assets. Through recent misfortunes his personal weaponry, apart from his own
mind and body, had been reduced to one middle-sized dagger. Leaving the dagger
at his belt, he caught sight of a pitchfork not far away, and swiftly and
softly took possession of it.
A certain urgency within his bladder next demanded his attention,
all the more so with impending combat probable. Relieving himself quietly into the hay, regretting
the lack of heroic capacity that might have served to put out a fire, Ben
listened for more shouts but for the moment could hear only the throbbing of
his aching head.
Doing his best to give the situation careful thought, he decided
that allowing or encouraging the barn to burn down around him would be a waste
of time for all concerned, and a waste of some perhaps innocent farmer's
property as well. Ben had no real idea how many of last night's companions and
their friends might be outside. What sounded like the clumsy muttering of six
or eight might instead be a much cleverer attempt by two or three men to
suggest greater numbers.
Well, he would soon find out how many men were outside, and
whether they were bluffing. He would go out and see. But he would do so without
announcing his real intention first.
Ready for action now, he bellowed a defiant challenge, to the
effect that if they wanted him, they were going to have to come in and get him.
Then, as quietly as possible, he slid down the ladder from the
hayloft to the dirt floor of the barn. And then, pitchfork in hand, he came out
fighting.
Ben's youth was behind him, but he could still run faster than
anyone would be likely to expect from a man of his size. He went out, moving
fast and hard, through a small door in what he would have called the rear of
the barn. The suggestion of numbers, he saw with a sinking feeling, had been no
bluff. At least five armed men were waiting for him among the manure piles the
back, but at first they recoiled from him and his pitchfork, yelling.
The bass voice that had commanded Ben to give up now shouted
orders meant for other ears, screaming hoarsely that if they wanted to survive
this day themselves, they had better take this fellow alive. These commands and threats were
issuing from a squat oaken hogshead of a man, somewhat shorter than Ben
himself, but apparently little if any lighter. Not one of last night's tavern
companions. Ben would have remembered this one.
Ben now had his back against the barn wall, hemmed in by a
semicircle of lesser men, most of them fierce-looking enough to inspire some
measure of respect. They kept him at bay, turning this way and that. While
feints came at Ben from right and left at the same time, one of them got almost
behind him with a clever rope. A moment later Ben's pitchfork had been
lassoed, and a few moments after that several strong hands had fastened on him,
and his dagger was plucked from his belt.
"We got him, Sarge!"
But in the next instant Ben proved to those who grasped his arms
and legs that they really hadn't. Not quite, not yet. He used his arms to crack
a pair of heads together with great energy.
The blade of a very keen-looking knife, coming up under his
throat, stopped this effort.
One of the Sarge's wrists, prodigiously thick and hairy, came into
Ben's field of vision. The enemy leader, striking out at his own
knife-wielding man, seemed to have suddenly become Ben's ally. "Alive, I
says! He's the one Blue Temple wants!"
That name made Ben redouble his efforts to break loose. It was
useless, though. He might have been able to fight off two or three of the
ill-clad, ill-equipped bandits at a time, and the remainder of them might have
been poorly coordinated or plain cowardly enough to stay at a safe distance.
But when the Sarge himself jumped in and grabbed him, using the biggest hands
that Ben had ever seen or felt, while two of his more stubborn minions still
clung on, Ben no longer had any chance of wrestling free.
This time he was down flat on his back. Raising his head as well
as he was able, he peered through a drifting haze of dust and barnyard chaff to
take a count. There were six or eight of them altogether, and two of them at
least, the ones whose heads he'd banged, were just as flat as he was. He hadn't
done so badly at that.
Now, though, four or five held Ben more or less in position, and
another was commencing operations with a coil of thin rope brought from the
barn, tying his wrists skillfully behind his back.
Ben, looking at the world through a reddish haze of exhaustion,
his chest heaving, his pulse thudding in his ears, had the sudden notion that
at forty-two, give or take a year or so, he was definitely getting too old for
this kind of thing.
Now, Ben's arms immobilized, a couple of his stronger captors took
him by the arms and heaved him to his feet.
It seemed there were going to be formal introductions.
"Sergeant Brod," growled the walking hogshead, standing
directly in front of Ben, and extending one enormous hand as if Ben ought to
be able to snap free of his bonds and shake it. "Better known to some of
me own followers as the Sarge. I am the leader of this small but efficient
band."
"Pleased to meet you," said Ben. Squinting at Brod and
the men who surrounded him, Ben decided that Brod's men all appeared to be more
or less afraid of him, and with some cause.
Brod's coloring was fair, right now still red-faced from his
recent efforts. His features were fairly regular except for a nose that
approached the size to qualify as a disfiguring defect.
Fancy tattoos adorned the Sarge's massive shoulders, which bulged
out of a sleeveless leather vest. His dirty hair, some indeterminate shade
between blond and red, was tied in long pigtails.
From inside his vault of a chest, his bass voice rasped out what
sounded like an accusation: "You're Ben of Purkinje."
Ben blew a tickle of straw free of his upper lip. Trying to get
his breathing back to normal, he replied as nonchalantly as he could: "You
have the wrong man. My name is Charles, and I'm a blacksmith."
The Sarge had a good laugh. He really enjoyed that one.
"Aye, and my name's really Buttercup, and I sell cobwebs for
a living!" Fists on hips, he sized up his prisoner's size and shape, and
appeared delighted with what he saw. He clouted Ben a friendly buffet on the
shoulder, rocking him on his planted feet.
In another minute the little gang was on the march, away from barn
and farmyard. Ben, arms bound, marched in the middle of the group. No one
bothered to grip his arms now; he wasn't going to run away. From snatches of
conversation between Sergeant Brod and his followers, he gathered that he was
being held for delivery to certain representatives of the Blue Temple, who had
a standing offer of a great reward for the live body of Ben of Purkinje, or
some lesser amount for that body dead. To Ben the proposed transaction sounded
all too convincing.
That the Blue Temple wanted him was easy to believe. But that
those notorious skinflints would consider paying any reward at all was
frightening. It showed how badly they craved getting their hands on him.
The little band of freebooters, Ben still with his arms tied in
their midst, were angling downhill, approaching the good-sized river which ran
only a couple of hundred meters from the barn. On the near bank Ben saw a
flatboat tied up. It was a crudely constructed craft, a score of paces long, half that
distance wide, fashioned mostly of unpeeled logs.
As soon as it became obvious that he was being escorted right to
the boat, Ben stumbled. Then he dug in his feet. Or gave the impression of
trying to do so.
"Where are we going?" he demanded.
"Just a little cruise." Roughly he was pushed along.
On being taken aboard the flatboat, the prisoner gave every
indication of trying to disguise a deep distrust of water, edging reflexively
toward the center of the crude plank deck.
One of the gang, watching him with shrewd malice, probing for a
weakness, smiling slyly, asked him: "Don't care for the water?"
Ben, a nervous expression on his ugly face, turned to his
questioner. "Not much of a swimmer," he admitted.
They were willing to let him sit down approximately amidships.
There was a little freight on board as well, a couple of barrow-loads of
unidentifiable cargo tied down under a tarpaulin. From where Ben was sitting,
he could see one small rowboat, stowed bottom-up on the broad deck. It looked
serviceable. He couldn't see any oars.
Ben considered making a serious effort to break his bonds. Having
got a look at the old rope before they used it, he thought that doing so would
not be completely beyond the bounds of possibility. But any such effort would
have to wait until he was unwatched.
While the men began what seemed an unfamiliar process of casting
off, the Sarge, as if he wanted to talk, came to sit on a small box facing Ben.
Any effort at breaking ropes would have to be postponed. Ben,
ready to try a different tactic, announced: "If I were this fellow from
Purkinje, or wherever, why my friends might pay a better price for me even than
my enemies."
"Maybe." Brod sounded doubtful of that proposition, to
say the least.
"Did you ever try to get money for anything out of the Blue
Temple?"
The other looked at his prisoner thoughtfully. "I know what
you mean, friend. But they'll pay this time, in advance, or they won't get
you. 'Sides, we've contracted to do another little job for them."
"What's that?"
The answer had to be postponed. Brod rose to supervise his
unskilled crew's efforts to get the boat free of the shore.
By dint of much poling, and the blaspheming of many gods, along
with energetic sweeps of the four long steering oars, the flatboat was at last
dislodged from the river-bank and under way downstream. Ben was no great expert
in these matters, but in his judgment the men manning the sweeps and poles were
being pretty clumsy about it. The difficulty wasn't entirely their fault, though.
Obviously this craft had been designed for use somewhere upriver, maybe for
ferrying livestock about, and had somehow been taken over by these goons, who
were riding it downriver into waters somewhat rougher than those for which it
had been built.
At about this time Ben noticed a distracting presence, one he
certainly didn't need just now, maneuvering on the outskirts of the scene. This
was a large, gray-feathered bird, and with a sinking feeling he recognized it
as a winged messenger from Sarykam. At any other time he would have been
pleased to get some word from home, and to have an opportunity to send word
back. Just now, though, the hovering presence of the courier threatened the
last faint credibility of his pose as Charles the Smith.
Perhaps the creature was bright enough to understand this in some dim way; as if
unable to make up its small mind whether or not to communicate with Ben, the
bird came no nearer than the bottom of the upended rowboat, where it perched
uncertainly and cocked its small-brained head at him. Presently one of the
bandits threw a chip of wood at it, causing it to take wing for the shore. But
after being driven from the boat, the messenger just flew along the shore from
tree to tree, at a little distance.
Brod had noted the bird's presence, and was evidently shrewd
enough to understand what it signified.
"Reckon maybe it wants some blacksmithin' done? New shoes,
maybe, so it can run like a riding'-beast?" The Sarge enjoyed another
laugh.
Ben did his best to pretend he didn't know what bird Brod was
talking about.
Several hours passed in uneventful voyaging, with the current
bearing the clumsy craft downstream at a good pace. A tributary came in on the
east bank, and the river—Ben had never learned its name—broadened appreciably.
Rocky hills on the horizon ahead suggested that the water might get rougher
there, when this river became narrower and swifter, forcing itself between
them.
Still the gray-feathered messenger effortlessly kept pace, darting
from tree to tree along the shore. Trying to put that problem out of his
thoughts for the time being, Ben considered Sergeant Brod. The brawny Sergeant
was still smiling at his prisoner from time to time, nodding, appraising him.
He seemed to have a more than commercial interest in the famous—well,
semi-famous—Ben of Purkinje as well. Ben was vaguely aware that he enjoyed an
almost legendary reputation for strength, among people who were interested in
keeping track of such things.
The Sarge came to stand in front of Ben. This time he put his foot on the box. At
length he remarked: "They say you're a pretty good wrestler."
"Me? No. This Ben of Purkinje maybe is. I don't bother with
that kind of thing."
"Don't bother with it?" Brod screwed his eyes almost
shut in puzzlement.
"No." Ben shook his head. "What's there to know
about wrestling? It all comes down to who is stronger, and there I always have
the edge. Nothing like blacksmithing to build the muscles. Lucky for you, you
had six men to help you tie me up."
The redness of the Sarge's face seemed to be deepening.
"Lucky for me? What by all the gods' elbows can you mean?"
Ben shrugged.
By now a couple of Brod's followers were starting to take an
interest. Obviously they were fascinated by the prospect of watching a
wrestling match between these two titans.
Afterward, Ben was never quite sure just how the first specific
proposal had been made, or by whom.
"Think you could take him, Sarge?"
"Gwan! Sure, our Sarge could take 'im. Could take
anyone!"
"Wrestling on a boat?" Ben, glancing nervously at the
surface of the river so perilously near at hand, displayed apprehension at the
mere idea.
Either Brod was supremely confident in his own strength and skill
or he was shrewd enough to realize that his authority might be adversely
affected if he failed to meet this adversary fairly. For whatever reason, he
made no objection when someone started to untie the old rope with which Ben's
arms were bound.
Someone else suggested they tie a rope around Ben before the bout,
so they could pull back their valuable prisoner in case he tried to swim away.
Ben for a moment considered seconding the request for such a safety measure, confident
that it would be denied. And sure enough the scheme was hooted down. No one
could wrestle with a rope tied round them, could they?
The rocky hills ahead were somewhat closer now, and the river was
gradually becoming swifter and rougher here, with traces of white water ahead.
Just a few such traces, along both banks, which were growing steeper, so that
the passage between increasingly rocky shores, Ben thought, might at some point
require careful steering. Better steering than even skilled boatmen could
manage with these sweeps.
The ropes were off.
Brod was considerably younger than Ben. Ben, sizing his opponent
up, was struck for the first time by the fact that this fellow was young enough
to be his son.
But he couldn't really be ... could he?
Ben found that an ugly suggestion, but not one that was going to
cause him a whole lot of worry. Besides bulk and apparent strength, there was
very little resemblance.
Ben moved out to the middle of the crude plank deck, rubbing his
arms, stamping his feet to get the circulation going. Actually the blood was
flowing pretty well already, but he wanted another chance to look around,
getting a good view now of the stern of the boat, which had been behind him
when he was tied.
Brod, doing his own muscle-flexing, was grinning at him. "You
were really a good wrestler once, hey pop?"
"Did a lot better after I got my full growth." Ben
considered. "You probably will, too."
There was really no problem about room. A central space was
quickly cleared of a litter of odd personal possessions and miscellaneous
garbage. Basically the arena was a deck of rough planks, covering the central
two-thirds of the craft. The crew grinning and making almost-secret wagers—no
one wanted to offend the chief by betting openly against him—arranged themselves around the
rectangle, while with a minimum of preparation the two contestants moved to
diagonally opposite corners of the space.
There rose a minor chorus of cheers, incoherent enough that Ben
could not tell who they were meant to encourage.
The two contestants began circling, stalking each other.
Ben noted from the corners of his eyes that two of the gang who
were currently supposed to be on watch, manning a couple of the large sweep
oars, had abandoned their duties, preferring to keep an eye on the contest. The
drifting raft was turning this way and that.
Brod growled, shuffled his feet and flexed his muscles. Both feet
and muscles were really enormous.
Ben stood in one place, swaying slightly with the motion of the
planks underfoot, doing his best to appear hesitant and uncertain, yet gamely
determined. This was a clumsy blacksmith, wondering what to do. He looked
wide-eyed, innocent in an ugly sort of way.
Brod, quicker than he looked, lunged at him. The two men grappled,
grunting and straining, coming to no immediate conclusion, each testing the
other's strength and skill. The watchers yelled incoherently. Ben felt sure
that some of them at least were cheering for him. Not that he gave a damn.
Ben and Brod broke apart, each backing up a step or two.
"Don't know no wrestling, huh?" The Sarge shook his
pigtails in what might have been admiration. Ben's fingers had left red and
white imprints on his hairy arms.
Ben seemed to be wondering what all the excitement was about.
"Anybody can do this."
The Sarge's face stiffened. He charged again. At the impact, a
cheer went up from the onlookers; Ben, bracing his booted feet, took the charge without being
driven back.
"Don't like the water, huh? 'Spect me to believe that?"
Brod gasped between exertions.
Ben said nothing, saving his breath. He had the feeling he was
going to need as much of it as he could get; the Sarge was just about as strong
as he looked.
After the pair of them had made the round of the little arena a
couple of times, struggling from fore to aft and port to starboard, Ben nodded
to himself. He thought he now had his opponent pretty well figured out. Unfortunately,
a real win in this situation was going to require more than putting Brod down
on his back.
Before Ben could plan his next move, Brod took the initiative
again, coming in a screaming, all-or-nothing charge. Ben, trying his best to
sidestep, could get only partially out of the way. The two big men, arms momentarily
linked like those of whirling dancers, spun out of the arranged arena, toward
the edge of the raft-like deck, almost under one of the stern sweeps.
The watchers were screaming themselves hoarse. The long, unwieldy
steering oars were bouncing in their locks, unmanned. The two wrestlers had
come to a stop only a step from the water. Brod's wide, astonished eyes, half a
dozen centimeters from Ben's stared at the unmanned oars. The little crowd of
onlookers was sending up a greater roar than ever.
There came a crash, a great shuddering impact. The raftlike craft
had struck a glancing blow against a rock.
Feet planted solidly, Ben kept his balance. He gulped his lungs
full of air, held his breath, and strained his muscles. Lifting his opponent
clean off his feet, he took him overboard. Brod's scream had something in it of
the tones of a delighted child.
Cold water smote them both, the fierce current twisting their
bodies even as they sank. The Sarge's grip loosened immediately as they hit the water. Ben
pushed his opponent away, and let himself plummet as deep as the river would
take him, trying to swim upstream. He rejoiced to find that right here, at
least, the cold torrent was deep enough to offer concealment and protection.
When he had to come up for air, Ben looked back in the direction
of the boat and was glad to see that half the people aboard had been knocked
off their feet. No one at the moment was even thinking about pursuing Ben.
Right beside him, as in several other places in the vicinity, some
rocks rose well above the surface, offering the fugitive a solid refuge while
he caught his breath.
Many of the raftsmen looked terrified. Maybe they couldn't swim.
They clung desperately to whatever portion of the boat they could get their
hands on. Some, shrieking and cursing, went sliding helplessly overboard.
Ben couldn't wait around all day, watching the fun. Orienting
himself toward the west bank, which looked to him a little more hospitable, he
plunged under water again and started swimming.
Swimming with boots on was difficult indeed, but there hadn't been
time to take them off. Besides, he expected that he was going to need footgear
when he came ashore.
Though the river was perhaps a hundred meters broad at this point,
most of its depth was concentrated in a single narrow channel. Striking for the
west bank, trying to angle upstream to put more distance between himself and
the flatboat, Ben soon found he could once more plant his feet on the bottom
and still get his face high enough to breathe.
Fortunately the majority of his former captors still had their
hands full with other problems. But a few had recovered. A few missiles—one
arrow, a slung stone or two—hurtled inaccurately after him. Ben saw the arrow pierce only the current,
the rocks go banging and breaking on bigger rocks.
If he lingered in the neighborhood, the next step would probably
be a determined swimmer or two, blade-armed, coming after him.
Ben decided not to wait. A couple of additional missiles landed
in the general neighborhood. He thought he could hear Brod, surfaced and
clinging to another rock, or back on the boat, bellowing in rage. Gulping a
breath, Ben went under water again, striking once more for the west bank,
swimming powerfully, staying under as long as he could.
Briefly he worried that the bandits might find oars for the
rowboat, and launch it successfully. But in the continuing confusion that
threat now looked increasingly unlikely.
Currents and rocks grew tricky, and he endured a struggle in rough
water to reach shore—but, being an excellent swimmer, he made it safely.
Definitely he was ready for a rest. But now was not the time.
Stamping and squishing, he moved inland, getting Brod and all his people
thoroughly out of sight and sound.
GETTING away from the river as expeditiously as possible, Ben
struggled to put distance and obstacles between himself and the bandits. Their
angry yells— concerned more, he was sure, with their own plight than with his
escape—were drowned by the water raging at the rocks; and then all sounds
coming from the river faded altogether.
Unfortunately the messenger-bird from Sarykam had now disappeared
as well. For the next half hour he concentrated on making strides inland,
staying on the hardest ground he could find, just in case anyone should
attempt to trail him. No doubt the Blue Temple had promised a good reward.
After half an hour it was necessary to pause for a brief rest.
Once he had squeezed some residual water from his clothing, he continued west
at a steady pace.
The landscape ahead of Ben spread itself out in a rugged, arid,
and uninviting prospect. In several places he could observe distant hills
approaching the size of mountains. There were no roads, fences, or houses to be
seen. In another half hour his steady pace became hesitant. Then he began to
angle to the north. Lacking anything in the way of food, or even a canteen, he
was reluctant
to go straight out into what looked like utter desolation.
Ben spent the night in the open, having encountered no one, and
seen few signs of settlement. He lay down in the chill of early night, grateful
that at least by now his clothing had dried completely, and wishing for last
night's itchy hay. He breakfasted on a couple of juicy roots, and kept on
going.
A full day after his escape from the flatboat, now walking almost
straight north, he caught sight of three people on foot in the distance. They
were approaching him from the northwest, on a course that seemed calculated to
intercept his own. Ben halted, squinting with a hand raised to shade his eyes.
Even at a distance it was obvious that these three were not members of Brod's
cutthroat gang.
Shrugging his shoulders, he resumed his advance. As the distance
between them diminished, he observed that there was something familiar about
two of the approaching figures; and one of those two was holding in both hands
a gleaming thing, like a long sword.
Or, rather, like a very different kind of weapon. Something much
more than any ordinary sword.
A minute after making that discovery, Ben was exchanging
enthusiastic greetings with two of the travelers he had so fortunately—as he
thought—encountered.
One of these two old acquaintances, she who had once been the
Silver Queen, was saying to Ben: "So, you are my gate to peace and truth,
you man of blood? It seems unlikely. And yet the Sword of Wisdom has fastened
me upon your trail."
Ben looked at the Sword, and at the woman who held it. He said:
"I think I must hear some explanation."
As soon as the greetings between old friends had been concluded,
Valdemar and Ben were introduced. Valdemar was certainly the taller of the two
gigantic men, but Zoltan, watching, thought it hard to judge which was the more
massive. The two clasped hands, and sized each other up with quick appraising
glances.
Presently Ben heard what Valdemar's request to the Sword of Wisdom
had been: to be guided to some woman who would match his image of an ideal
wife.
The older man sighed wearily. "Maybe I should have asked that
oracle the same question, years ago."
The day had been gray ever since sunrise, and now a threat of rain
was materializing. Casting about for a place of safety and reasonable comfort,
the party of four took shelter from a shower under an overhang of cliff. From
here it was possible to look back in the direction Ben had come from the river,
so any bandits who might be after him ought to become visible in time to be
avoided.
The three old friends naturally had much to talk about. Zoltan
demanded of Ben: "Tell us how things are going back in Sarykam. How long
ago did you leave there?"
Some of the cheerfulness so recently restored now faded swiftly
from Ben's eyes. He said softly: "They are not going well."
Yambu, like Zoltan, was strongly interested in what news of
Tasavalta Ben might provide. "Then tell us," she urged.
Ben drew a deep breath. "I'll try to put the worst of it in a
nutshell. There was an attack on the palace last year; all of the royal family
survived, but Princess Kristin was badly crippled in a fall from the roof. For
a time everyone feared that she would die. Now—some say death is the happiest
result that can be expected."
All of them were quick with more questions. Ben's answers offered
them little or no comfort. The stones of a Palace courtyard had badly damaged
Kristin's spine, had broken other bones, and crushed internal organs.
Her mind, spirit, and body had all been badly damaged.
Zoltan, who was Prince Mark's nephew, muttered blasphemies in a
low voice. Yambu frowned in silence.
Valdemar, who knew next to nothing of Tasavalta or its rulers,
still expressed his indignation, and his loathing of villains who could cause
such pain. He then demanded to know who was guilty of launching the attack.
Ben shrugged. "Chiefly Vilkata and his demons, along with a
certain Culmian prince. We're rid of them all now. Good riddance. But—too late
to help our Princess."
Yambu was looking closely at her old associate. "And you,
Ben? How are you, apart from this evil that has befallen those you love? How
are your own wife and daughter—Barbara and Beth are their names, are they
not?"
"As far as I know, my daughter and my wife are well enough in
body," Ben answered shortly. "Let me put it this way. My life at home
has recently been such that I do not mind spending most of my days and nights
away from home."
Yambu was sympathetic. "How old is the girl?"
"Seventeen."
"That can be an age of difficulty."
Ben made a sound somewhere between a grunt and a laugh. "When
I myself arrive at some age that fails to bring its troubles, lady, I will make
a note of it."
Zoltan gave Ben one sympathetic look, but then the young man's
thoughts quickly turned to the difficulties his aunt and uncle, and all their
realm, must be experiencing.
He asked: "Tell us of my Uncle Mark."
Ben seemed glad to leave the talk of his personal affairs.
"Your uncle is unhappy," he answered shortly, "as one might
expect."
At that point he fell silent, staring past the lady's head. When
the others turned to see what he was looking at, they saw, and Yambu and Zoltan recognized,
one of the half-intelligent messenger birds of Tasavalta, sitting on a branch
of the only sizable tree in the immediate vicinity.
Getting to his feet, Ben addressed the bird: "I had given you
up, messenger. Well, now I am here, free to talk with you. What word have you
for Ben?"
Spreading soft wings, gliding from its branch to a nearby rock,
the creature chirped in its inhuman voice: "Ben, the Prince asks you for
news. The Prince asks you for news."
"Well, when you reach the Prince again, tell him the news
could be a lot worse; because here I am, still alive, and I have met friends
who are armed with a Sword. But it could be better, because I am no closer to
finding the Sword we want."
"Say message again. Say message again."
"I will, messenger, I will. But later. There's no hurry about
this one." Ben spoke slowly and distinctly, as if to a child. "Rest
now. Message later. Rest now."
The bird flew back to its higher perch, where it settled itself as
if to rest.
"The Prince is at home, then," Zoltan commented.
Ben nodded. "Since Kristin's crippling, he's spent more time
in Sarykam than he did in the past two or three years put together. No more
roaming the world, trying to look out for the Emperor's business."
"And what of their sons?" Yambu wanted to know.
"How old are the two princelings now?"
Ben considered. "Stephen must be twelve. He has a temper.
He'll be a dangerous man in a few years."
"And Prince Adrian?"
"Two years older. Secluded, somewhere well away from home, I
don't know where, perfecting his wizardry. I expect we'll not see much of him
for a year or two to come." It was common for serious apprentices in the
arts of magic
to withdraw from the mundane world for a time of preparation.
"And nothing can be done for Kristin?"
"In the ordinary ways of healing and of magic, nothing.
There is only one real hope, of course," Ben concluded shortly.
"The Sword Woundhealer." Yambu nodded, and sighed.
Ben nodded too. "Of course we had the keeping of it there in
Sarykam for years, but. . . there's no use worrying over that now. Mark
nowadays thinks of little else but somehow getting Woundhealer back. He stays
in Sarykam himself, but he sees to it that every clue, every hint we can
obtain—whether reasonable or not, I sometimes think—is followed to the end.
"That is why I am here now. There was one rumor, one hint,
about Woundhealer, that we thought especially promising. It put the Sword
somewhere in this area."
"And you came alone to track down this hint?" asked
Valdemar, who until now had been largely silent.
Thunder grumbled overhead, and more rain was starting to come
down. Ben looked at his questioner. "I was not alone when I set out. Six
other people and three of the great birds came with me. I can give you the
unpleasant details later, but at this point only I, out of seven humans, am
still alive; as for the birds, they no longer travel with me, but one of them
finds me from time to time, as you have seen. Thus I am kept somewhat in touch
with Sarykam."
Ben related to Yambu, Zoltan, and Valdemar additional details of
his struggle with the band of river bandits, and his escape.
Zoltan asked: "Are they seeking the Sword of Mercy too?"
"Perhaps. They had something going with the Blue Temple, besides
selling me to them—or they thought they did."
In turn, the Silver Queen and Zoltan told Ben the tale of their
recent harassment by the leatherwings, of their fortunate encounter with
Valdemar and the Sword he had been so strangely given, and how during the last
few days the three of them, with Wayfinder's help, had managed to avoid the
flying reptiles.
Ben gestured toward the Sword of Wisdom. "Speaking of your
treasure there, I suppose you'll have no objection to my borrowing its powers
for a while?"
Yambu smiled faintly. "I have been expecting you to ask. Let
me see if I can guess for what purpose."
"No doubt a single guess will be all you'll need. I want
first to locate the Sword of Healing, and then to get my hands on it."
"Have you no more selfish wants than that, big man?"
"That will do for the time being."
In unconsciously queenly fashion, Yambu raised Wayfinder in her
own hands and apostrophized the Sword: "I asked you, Sword, for peace, and
you have led me to this man of blood."
Zoltan saw Ben frown slightly at that.
Yambu continued: "I see my own quest must give way to one of
greater urgency. But before I hand you over to him, Sword, what else do you
have to tell me? Is it possible that by following him I will discover the peace
that has eluded me for so long?"
The other three, watching closely, could see plainly how the Sword
tugged, slowly twisting in her hands until it bent her wrists, aiming itself at
the huge man.
Without further comment the Silver Queen reversed her grip on the
black hilt, and handed Wayfinder over to Ben.
Reaching for the weapon eagerly, he murmured thanks. Once
Wayfinder was in his grasp he wasted no time, but at once demanded of it bluntly: "Sword, lead
me where I want to go!"
The Sword of Wisdom in his hands at once twisted around sharply;
Zoltan, though no stranger to the Swords and their powers, felt his scalp
prickle. The weapon reminded him of some intelligent animal, responding
differently as soon as it came under the control of a different master, perhaps
a warbeast roused from sleep and scenting blood. Zoltan thought that this time
he saw the blade actually bend, until the tip pointed somewhere to the
northeast. That direction, he thought, was close to, though it did not exactly
coincide with, the bearing of Sarykam.
Still holding the Sword leveled, Ben shuffled his feet, as if
getting his weary legs ready to move again. He asked his companions: "Are
all of you ready to move?" It did not appear to have entered his thoughts
that any of the three might choose not to accompany him.
Valdemar stood up, towering over everyone else. He said slowly:
"I began my journey holding in my hands that Sword you now have, and with
my own goal, not yours, in mind. And so now I have my doubts about going with
you."
At that Zoltan turned on him sharply: "I suppose you think
your quest is more important than this one?"
Valdemar raised his eyebrows. He said mildly: "It is
important to me."
The two young men were of the same age, or very nearly so; but
Valdemar—only partially because of his size—generally gave the impression of
being older.
"Well, perhaps you can manage to locate a wife without the
help of Wayfinder," said Zoltan. "Or—who knows?—if you come with us
you might discover one to your liking in Sarykam."
The other shrugged. "Perhaps, friend Zoltan. Anyway, you
should remember that I am not ready to abandon my purpose. But I have already given the Sword
to Lady Yambu, given it freely, and so I have no claim on it any longer."
"You are welcome to take it back, long enough to ask a
question," the lady assured him.
Ben nodded. "Just don't be all day about it."
The lady paused in the act of handing Wayfinder back to Valdemar.
Frowning, she said to him: "You are something of a magician, are you
not?"
The tall youth blinked at her as if the question had surprised
him. "I have a certain knack for doing tricks with light, and mirrors, and
sand and water," he admitted. "No more than that. Depending on the
company in which I find myself, I sometimes claim to know a little magic. But
how did you know?"
"I have known another magician or two in my time. The art is
wont to leave its traces." Yambu shrugged. "In this company you may
freely claim competence," she told Valdemar. "I doubt that any of us
are able to surpass you, in whatever it is you do with light and
mirrors."
Valdemar received the Sword from her, and held it steadily.
"I ask—" he began firmly, then hesitated, looking at the others.
"I suppose there is no preferred formula of words?"
"None I know of," said Ben impatiently. "Just ask your
question." The rain was falling harder now, though so far the the overhang
of cliff had kept them almost dry.
"Then I ask," said Valdemar, with perhaps a hint of
embarrassment in his voice, "the same question as before. When I spoke to
this Sword in my own house."
Wayfinder pointed straight in the direction of the Silver Queen.
The rain slackened somewhat. Ben, though tired, was eager to get
moving, and none of the others insisted on a chance to rest. All four set out
together, in the direction indicated by Wayfinder.
Ben, who walked with Zoltan in the lead, now wore the Sword of
Wisdom at his belt—drawing and using it occasionally, to confirm that they
remained on the proper course—while Lady Yambu walked at Valdemar's side.
They had been hiking for a quarter of an hour when Valdemar asked:
"What lies ahead of us?"
"Not much but desert," Ben returned shortly. "And
somewhere in it, I suppose, the river I went boating on yesterday."
"A wasteland," said Yambu. "One that will take us
days to cross."
ONCE Wood decided to depart the city where he and Tigris had visited
the Blue Temple headquarters, he summoned up his preferred form of rapid transportation.
He and his young lieutenant were soon mounted upon a griffin, riding the wind a
kilometer above the land. The Ancient One's chosen destination was one of his
remoter strongholds. He and Tigris were bringing with them only a few
assistants, chosen from those of his people he least mistrusted, who rode
clinging for their lives on the backs of similar steeds.
As soon as the Ancient One and his party had reached their goal,
all of his helpers, including Tigris, were promptly assigned their tasks of
magic, and set to work.
Some hours later, laboring inside a stone-vaulted chamber enclosed
by many barriers of matter and of magic, the master of the establishment raised
his head over a massive wooden workbench lighted by Old World globes and marked
with an intricacy of carven diagrams.
He asked: "Tigris, are we completely secure against
unfriendly observation?"
"Master?" Across the room the young woman, startled,
looked up from her own work.
"I mean observation from outside. Are there spies, human or otherwise,
anywhere in sight of our walls? Do you make sure that there are none. I would
attend to the matter myself, but I am otherwise engaged at the moment."
"Now, Master?"
"Now."
Suffering in silence the interruption of her own work, the young
woman methodically disengaged herself from her current task. Then she employed
her considerable powers to satisfy her Master's latest wish, sending her
perception outwards, while her body remained standing beside the bench.
Outside the stronghold, not many meters distant and yet a world
away, behind grim walls of heavy rock and curtains of dark magic, some trees
and other vegetation grew naturally. There a handful of birds were singing. Not
messengers, these. These birds were wild and small and totally unintelligent.
Of unfriendly observation there was not a trace. Unless the small
birds could be counted as unfriendly to the Master and his cause.
For another moment, a moment longer than was really necessary,
Tigris barkened carefully. Her body standing indoors did not move, except that
her red lips parted.
"Well?"
The young woman returned fully to her body. "Nothing,
Master. Nothing and no one out there now."
"You sense nothing?"
Again Tigris employed the full range of her trained perceptions.
Again she came back. "Only songbirds."
The Ancient One grunted something, a sound of grudging
satisfaction, and returned to his powerful ritual, whose goal, his assistant
knew, was the discovery of information about certain of Wood's enemies, notably
the Emperor, and the Emperor's son, Mark of Tasavalta.
Tigris, aware of a strange reluctance to do so, firmly put from her thoughts her
memory of the outside world. She also returned, but more slowly, to her tasks.
At odd moments during the next few hours, she pondered her own
reactions. She had been somewhat surprised—though not entirely—to find herself
prolonging the reconnaissance unnecessarily, simply to harken to the songbirds
for one moment more.
The hours passed. Lesser aides, bringing messages, were
intercepted by Tigris, so that her Master should not be disturbed. The great
magician had been isolated at his workbench for some time with certain
half-material, semi-animate powers, and his own thoughts.
At length, when it seemed a safe moment to interrupt her lord,
Tigris approached him.
His eyes, coming back from a great distance, at length focused on
hers. "Well?"
"Master, a reptile scout has just arrived at the stronghold,
carrying intelligence." She named a region that was many kilometers away.
"So? What word, then?"
"Sire, some Blue Temple people in that area have very
recently acquired the Sword of Mercy."
Now the man's beautiful blue eyes were truly focused.
"Woundhealer." He breathed the name in a hoarse whisper. "We
know just where it is? There is no mistake?"
"The location is only approximate. But I believe the
report."
In excitement he seized her arm. His grip for some reason felt icy
cold. "Tigris, my plans bear fruit!"
"Master, we all expected nothing less."
Wood paused in thought, clasping his hands in front of him,
smiling and nodding with satisfaction. "Woundhealer, my dear," he
remarked to his young associate, "is perhaps the only Sword that I would
be willing to trust in the hands of a subordinate.
"Therefore I am not rushing out into the field to take it
away from those Blue Temple fools—I may decide to send you. When you have
completed your present tasks."
The blond head bowed deeply. "I will of course be honored,
Master."
"We shall see. As usual, I have other important tasks to
perform. Though I must admit that, in a way, there is no other Sword that I am
more anxious to possess."
Tigris allowed herself a display of mild surprise. "Master,
the Sword of Mercy is certainly a tool of great value. We are, any and all of
us, subject to injury sooner or later."
"Obviously. But I think you miss my point."
"Master?"
"Certainly, when one is badly hurt, healing is priceless. But
surely you cannot fail to see that Woundhealer will also be of exquisite value
in the torture chamber."
"Ah."
"Yes, 'Ah' indeed. Just consider the possibilities, when the
occupant of the rack or of the boot can be revived over and over, times without
number. When one is entertaining one's enemy under such favorable conditions,
one always hates to say a permanent goodbye. Imagine the guest, just as final
unconsciousness is about to overtake him—or her—being restored to perfect
physical health and strength, every nerve and every blood vessel intact again.
And restored quickly, almost instantly! No need even to remove him—or her—from
the rack for a period of recuperation."
Wood sighed faintly. "I tell you, Tigris, I would give a
great deal to be able to take the Sword of Love—and a few well-chosen guests,
of course—and retire to one of my fortresses for a few years of well-earned
rest and entertainment."
"My Master, I look forward to making such a retreat with you. What pleasures
could we not devise?" The blond young woman giggled, a delicious sound.
"Yes." Wood stroked her hair, and his features softened
momentarily. "You are a beautiful creature."
"Thank you."
"And loyal to me."
"Naturally, Master."
"Naturally." The stroking hand moved on. "Really
beautiful. And, of course, still really young. That is a rare quality among my
close associates, and one I value. Yes my dear, you are precious to me."
The head of yellow curls bowed humbly.
But Wood's expression was hardening again. His fondling hand fell
to his side. "Unfortunately, we can spare no time for any prolonged
diversion now."
"No, Master."
Standing with hands braced on his workbench, issuing brisk
commands, the Ancient One dictated the reply he wanted sent back to his people
in the field.
The necessary materials were readily at hand. Tigris wrote what
she was ordered to write. The message was short and to the point; the written
words glowed briefly, then disappeared from the thin parchment, not to regain
their visibility until the proper spell should be recited over them.
Now the wizard paced as he completed the dictation. "Tell my
people that they are graciously granted permission to use Woundhealer to cure
whatever wounds they may have suffered."
"Yes, Master."
"As for healing anyone else, if the question should come up
... I think not." The handsome man smiled his youthful smile.
A few minutes later, standing on the battlements to make sure that
the winged messenger was properly dispatched, she gazed upon the open sky, and heard bird-song
again.
This time, as she listened, the faint crease of a frown appeared
above her eyes. There was something she did not understand. Something that
bothered her.
Something those cheerful voices not only symbolized, but actively
conveyed. A plea, or a warning, that she ought to, but still did not,
understand.
The singers of course were only birds, nothing more than they
seemed to be, she was very sure of that. And that point perhaps had meaning.
Small and mindless and meaningless animals. Perhaps, though, simplicity, an absence
of trickery, was not altogether meaningless.
Tigris had the irrational feeling that, years ago, when she was
only a child, she might have been able to comprehend the birds . . . though
the child she had been of course had not begun to understand the world as it
really was.
Yet recently—today was not the first experience—she had been
nagged by the notion that in childhood she must have known something of great
importance, something essential, which she had since utterly forgotten.
Recently there came moments when it seemed to her that the thing forgotten had
once been, might still be, of overriding importance in her life.
It was unsettling.
Tigris closed her eyes, long enough to draw a breath and let it
go. For no longer than that did she allow herself to waste the Master's time.
Here in the stronghold of the Ancient One, one had to guard one's very thoughts
with extreme care.
At that same hour, the Sword of Wisdom gripped in the huge right
hand of Ben of Sarykam was guiding four people across an extensive wasteland.
They were making good time for travelers on foot, and Zoltan, the
most impetuous of the four if not precisely the youngest, did a good job of
restraining his impatience with the comparative slowness of his elders. But he
kept wanting to hurry them along. As soon as Zoltan had heard of his Aunt
Kristin's horrible injury and desperate need, he had become wholeheartedly
committed, perhaps even more than Ben, to the search for Woundhealer.
Their march across what was basically an uninhabited plain had
gone on for two days now. In the afternoons the spring sun grew uncomfortably
warm. Shade was scarce in this wasteland, and the walkers were all thankful
that summer was yet to come.
Now and then Ben grumbled that if they kept on much longer in this
direction, they were bound to come back to the river on which he had left the
bandit boat, though at a point considerably downstream from that where he had
made his escape.
"You are reluctant to reach a river?" Valdemar asked
him. "I think it would be a refreshing change."
"This one has bandits on it. I'll tell them you're the real
Ben of Purkinje."
As the day drew toward its close, the four, led to water by the
sight of thriving vegetation, came upon a small stream that issued from a
spring at the root of a rocky outcrop. Ben consulted with the lady, and by
agreement they called a halt for food and rest.
Shrugging out of his small pack, Valdemar remarked: "I have
no doubt that we are being led toward Wound-healer. But I wonder how far we
have to go."
Zoltan, shedding his own pack, answered: "No telling. We may
not even be going straight toward the Sword itself."
"Ah. It has already been explained to me that I may not be
going directly toward my bride. Whoever she may be."
"Right," Ben grunted abstractedly.
"My purpose then may well be twice delayed." For the
first time since he had joined the others, the young vineyardist sounded
faintly discouraged.
As the simple process of making camp got under way, Ben began to
reminisce about another journey once taken under the guidance of the Sword of
Wisdom. That had been nineteen years ago, and Wayfinder had been then in the
hands of the vengeful Baron Doon, who had used the powers of the Sword to guide
himself and his band of plunderers to the main hoard of the Blue Temple's
treasure.
"You speak as if you were there," commented Valdemar.
"I was," Ben answered shortly.
"I have heard some version of the story."
"Would you like to hear the truth?"
"Of course."
"Maybe one of these nights, when we are resting."
The four had pooled their food supplies, but the total was quickly
becoming ominously low. Zoltan expressed a hope of being able to find game in
this country, despite its barrenness. He had with him a sling, a weapon with
which he had gained some proficiency over the last few years. Zoltan went away
to hunt.
At least two kinds of wild spring berries were ripening in this
otherwise harsh land. And edible mushrooms were also coming up after recent
heavy showers. Yambu and Valdemar were able to gather a useful amount of food
within a short distance of the camp.
Meanwhile Ben was building a fire of dried brush and twigs. In
anticipation of making a stew of small game and vegetables, he also cut a large
gourd from a last year's groundvine. This receptacle he hollowed out with a skillful knife, to serve
as a cooking pot. A couple of hot stones dropped in would boil the water
nicely.
Once darkness had fallen, and the rabbit stew had been cooked and
consumed, Ben and Yambu drifted into serious talk beside the small campfire.
Their conversation acquired an earnest tone when Ben began to
reminisce about that last time, nineteen years ago, he had taken part in an
expedition guided by Wayfinder.
"Oh, I trust our guide, all right." He patted the black
hilt as if it might have been a favorite riding-beast. "As some of you well
know, this is not the first time I have held this Sword, and followed it."
Zoltan and Yambu nodded.
Ben was coming to the point now. He turned his ugly face toward
Yambu. "Ariane too was a member of that party."
She returned his meaningful gaze with an intent look of her own.
"I know that."
Valdemar, looking from one of the two older people to the other,
asked innocently and idly: "Who is Ariane?" There was not much hope
in his voice; doubtless he thought it unlikely that any woman who had been robbing
the Blue Temple nineteen years ago would qualify now as a good wife for a man
of twenty.
Yambu answered without looking at him. "She was my daughter,
and the Emperor's. And she died, nineteen years ago, in that damned Blue Temple
treasure-dungeon."
"I am sorry to hear it," said Valdemar after a moment.
He sounded as if he truly was.
Keeping his gaze fixed on Ariane's mother, Ben said: "Four
years ago, you and I had a chance to discuss what happened in that
treasure-dungeon, as you aptly call it. Four years ago we started to talk of
Ariane, but it seems to me that, for whatever reason, we said nothing important.
Now I want to talk with you about her, whom we both loved. And about the
Emperor."
Silence held. Yambu was not looking at Ben, but no one doubted
that she was listening.
"Because there is something I did not tell you when we met
four years ago," Ben continued, frowning.
"Yes?" Yambu's tone was noncommittal. She tossed a
handful of fresh fuel on the fire.
"A few years before our last meeting I encountered Ariane's
father. The Emperor told me that she was still alive. That she had been living
with him."
Ben's words hung in the air. Meanwhile the small campfire went on
about its business, snapping with brisk hunger at its latest allotment of twigs.
In the infinite darkness beyond the firelight wild creatures prowled, not
always silent. Yambu was looking at Ben now. She stared at him in silence for
what seemed a long time.
At last she asked: "Where, under what circumstances, did you
have this conversation with the Emperor?"
"On the shore of Lake Alkmaar. I was pretending to be a
carnival strongman, he was pretending to be a clown. You, as I recall, were not
far away, nor was Zoltan; you must both remember our situation."
Zoltan nodded thoughtfully.
Ben went on: "Understand, at the time my mind was on other
things entirely. I was afraid Mark might be dead, and I said something about
that. He said no, Mark was alive, it was hard to kill one of his—the Emperor's—
children. And then he said to me something I have never forgotten: 'My daughter
Ariane lives also. You may see her one day.' At the time I could not even begin
to think about Ariane again. But her father's words have kept— coming back to
me. Though I've never allowed myself to believe them."
"How . . . strange." Yambu was staring into some distance where none of her
companions thoughts or even imaginations were able to follow.
Ben's eyes remained fixed on the Silver Queen. His voice was
urgent: "You know him better than I do. You tell me how likely he is to be
truthful in such a matter."
"I, know him?" The Silver Queen, shaking her head, gave
a kind of laugh. "I've shared his bed, and borne his child. But I don't
even know his true name—assuming that he has one. Know him? You'll have to seek
out someone else for that."
"But does he tell the truth?"
The gray-haired woman was silent for what seemed to Ben a long
time. At last she said: "More than anyone else I've ever known, I think.
One reason, perhaps, why he's so impossible to live with."
No one said anything for a time. Then Valdemar, yawning, announced
that he intended to get some sleep.
Conversation immediately turned to the practical business of
standing guard—whoever was standing watch would of course be armed for the job
with the Sword of Wisdom.
Zoltan, having by lot been given the honor of standing the first
watch, paced in random fashion for a time, his worn boots making little sound
in the sandy soil. Slowly he looped round the still-smoldering fire in an
irregular pattern, remaining at a considerate distance from the three
blanket-wrapped forms of his companions.
Now and again the young man, his face vaguely troubled, stopped
to gaze at the naked weapon he was carrying. Then he silently and deliberately
paced on.
During one of these pauses, as Zoltan stared at the Sword of
Wisdom, his lips moved, as if he might be silently formulating a new question.
Even in the night's near-silence, the words were far too soft for
anyone else to hear: "If I were—if I, like Valdemar, were seeking the right
woman for myself—which way would I go?"
If the Sword reacted at all to this hypothetical new command, the
turning of its point, the twisting of its black hilt in Zoltan's grasp, must surely
have been very subtle, a movement right at the limit of his perception.
But probably, he thought, the Sword would not answer such a
conditional question at all.
Ought he to make the query definite? No, That part of his life he
ought to be able to manage for himself.
But it did cross Zoltan's mind that perhaps it would be wise for
him to ask, now when the Lady Yambu could not hear him, whether he should
remain with the Lady Yambu any longer or not.
In response to this question—if it was indeed a real question—the
reactions of Wayfinder in Zoltan's hands were very tentative, indicating first
one direction and then another.
Or was he only imagining now that the Sword responded at all?
Frowning with dissatisfaction, Zoltan sat down for a time, his
back to the dying fire, the weight of the drawn Sword resting on the sand in
front of him, faint stars and sparks of firelight reflecting in the blade.
When the stars in their turning informed the young man that his
watch had passed, he crawled softly to Valdemar's side and woke him with a
gentle shaking.
"All quiet?"
"All quiet."
Moments later, Zoltan was wrapped in his own blanket and snoring
faintly.
Now Valdemar was the one holding Wayfinder, and pacing. Presently,
like Zoltan, he sat down for a time, and like the smaller youth he found another question to
whisper to the oracle.
"Sword, how soon will you bring me to the goal I have asked
for? Another day? A month? A year?"
There was no reply.
Softly he pounded his great fist on the ground. He breathed:
"But of course, how can you answer such a question? It is only Where that
you must tell, never When or Why or How—or Who. So Where must be enough for
me."
Ben's turn on watch followed in due course. The older man did
little pacing—his legs felt that they had accomplished quite enough of that
during the day just past. But he moved around enough to be an effective sentry.
And he stayed creditably alert.
Ben too, found some serious personal thoughts and questions that
he wished to put to the Sword. But none of these queries were voiced loudly
enough for anyone else to hear.
He did not fail to keep track of time, or neglect to wake the Lady
Yambu when her turn came around, well before the sky had begun seriously to
lighten in the east.
Yambu took advantage of the opportunity to have a word or two with
Ben.
"What do you think of him?" she whispered, nodding in
the direction of the sleeping Valdemar.
Ben shrugged. "Nothing in particular. I doubt he's much more
than he seems to be. What I do wonder..."
"Yes?"
"How it is that the Sword will satisfy his wish, and yours,
and mine, by leading us all together in the same direction."
If the Silver Queen nursed private thoughts during the hours she
spent alone with Wayfinder she was not inclined to share them, even with the Sword. Her watch passed
uneventfully.
When the sun was up the party of four adventurers broke camp and
moved on, following the guidance of the Sword of Wisdom, once more in the hands
of Ben.
For another day or two the Sword continued to lead them steadily
northeast. Foraging and hunting kept them tolerably well fed. At night they
camped by water when it was available, and made dry camps when it was not, and
in either case stood watch in turn, in turn armed with the Sword of Wisdom.
Still there was no sign of the river Ben said they must inevitably
encounter; evidently its winding course was carrying it also farther to the
east.
Progressively the country surrounding the four seekers became more
and more a desert. And then one day the river, of which Ben had been so wary,
was again in sight.
THE course of the rediscovered river, as indicated by the
vegetation growing thickly along its banks, ran ahead of the travelers and
somewhat to the east. A kilometer or so after slicing its way into view
between hills to the north, the watercourse emerged from a rocky gorge onto
relatively flat land. Becoming visible at approximately the same time was a
faint road or track, the first sign of human endeavor the travelers had seen
for days. This came gently curving toward the river from the west, with a
directness suggesting that the point of intersection would provide a ford.
Shortly after this road came into their view, the sight of half a
dozen scavenger birds, circling low in several places above the near bank of
the river, alerted the four travelers to the presence of death. The number and
position of the gliding birds suggested that destruction of animal or human
life might recently have occurred on a substantial scale.
Less than an hour after first sighting the birds, the four
seekers, advancing steadily but cautiously, their afternoon shadows now
gliding far ahead of them, reached the place where the sketchy road descended a
shallow bank to ford the river.
Mounting a slight rise, Ben, who was a little ahead of the others, came to a stop,
grunting. The bandits' flatboat had survived, substantially intact, its
encounter with the rapids. It now lay run aground several hundred meters away,
a little downstream from the ford.
Ben pointed, and said to his three companions: "That's the
boat I swam away from."
The flatboat's sweeps and poles, or most of them, were missing, as
was the covered cargo, whatever that had been. There was no human presence,
living or dead, on the boat or near it.
Some small four-legged scavengers, whose presence had evidently
been keeping the hungry birds aloft, slunk away along the shoreline as the four
humans approached. One of the scampering little beasts turned to bare its
fangs, until Zoltan slung a stone at it, scoring only a near miss, the missile
kicking up a spurt of sand.
"I think I see a dead man," said Valdemar in a strained
voice, standing as tall as he could and squinting ahead from his great height.
"There. Just upstream from the ford."
The four advanced, still cautiously, the three who were armed with
hands on weapons. It was soon possible to confirm Valdemar's sighting. Then
almost at once they came in sight of another fallen body, lying nearer to them,
motionless beside a slaughtered riding-beast. And then a third man, this one
obviously dead, his skull crushed in.
"No more than a day ago," Zoltan muttered, looking
closely at the handiest corpse and sniffing.
Soon the total of human dead discovered had reached approximately
a dozen, all within a stone's throw of the ford.
Ben, peering closely now at the bodies, announced that he could
recognize some of the bandits from whom he had so recently escaped. He
confirmed that this definitely was—or had been—Brod's band, though the Sarge himself had
not yet been found.
"Some of them are wearing blue and gold," Valdemar commented
in a subdued voice. "That has to mean Blue Temple, doesn't it?"
Ben nodded. "Brod kept his rendezvous with them," he
mused. "Can't say I'm surprised that a fight started— but over what?"
He drew Wayfinder, which he had momentarily put away, muttered over the Sword,
turned it this way and that.
Signs on the ground indicated that riding-beasts, and perhaps
loadbeasts too, had galloped here, had run in panicked circles on the flat land
where the stream widened and smoothed into the ford. All this could be read
according to the tracks, which were quite plain in the moist sand of the
riverbank. The imprints were a day old, or not much more than that, drying and
crumbling around the edges. But no running animals were now in evidence;
whatever mounts and loadbeasts might have survived the fight had evidently
scattered.
Zoltan, darting about on the field of combat more energetically
than any of his companions, was seeking among bushes and boulders, bending over
bodies, examining one after another in rapid succession.
The four, exchanging comments, reached a consensus: One side,
either Blue Temple or bandits, had tried to cheat the other. Or perhaps both
had simultaneously attempted some kind of treachery. Then they had efficiently
killed each other off.
Ben was still leveling his Sword, turning it this way and that,
frowning, trying to interpret what the bright blade told him now. Wayfinder's
point was twitching.
Violent death was nothing new to any of the travelers, except
perhaps to Valdemar.
"Have you seen this kind of thing before?" the Silver
Queen inquired of him.
The towering youth replied with a shake of his head. He appeared
to be repelled, and somewhat upset by the unpleasant sights.
He muttered: "Foolishness, foolishness. Why are folk
determined to kill each other? It's as if they looked forward to their own
dying."
"I have no doubt some do," Yambu assured him.
Now Zoltan, who with a veteran's callous practicality had begun
rifling the packs of the fallen, announced with a cheerful cry the discovery of
food.
The provisions were mostly dried meat and hard biscuit. He began
to share them out with his companions. He came upon spare clothing, too, and
announced the welcome find.
Zoltan compared his own right foot with that of a corpse. "I
think this one's shoes may fit me. Just in time, mine are wearing
through."
There was a cry—really more a grunt—of excitement, from Ben. Not
long distracted from his quest by a mere battlefield, he had been guided by
Wayfinder to a wounded loadbeast.
The others saw him pointing the Sword at the animal where it stood
amid some scrubby bushes, which until now had screened it from their
observation. The load-beast's harness was marked with the Blue Temple insignia
of gold and blue, and it carried a full load on its back. The beast was
favoring its right foreleg, streaked with dried blood. There was water here,
and some good grazing along the river, so the animal must have been disinclined
to wander far.
No doubt, thought Zoltan, the scavengers had so far let the
loadbeast live because there was easier meat on hand for the taking.
In Ben's hands the Sword of Wisdom was pointing straight at the
trembling, braying animal.
Valdemar said: "Put the poor creature out of its misery, at
least."
But Ben had already sheathed the Sword of Wisdom, seized the
animal by its bridle, and pulled it out of the bushes so he could get at its
burdens more easily. In another moment Ben was unfastening panniers from the loadbeast's
back and dumping their contents on the ground.
His companions, alerted now, scarcely breathing, were all watching
him in silence.
Of all the bundles that had been strapped to the back of the
burdened animal, only one was long and narrow enough.
When the coverings of this package were ripped away by Ben's
powerful hands, it proved indeed to contain a Sword, black-hilted and elegantly
sheathed.
"Wait! Before you draw. That could be Soulcutter..."
Valdemar fell silent.
Ben was holding the sheathed and belted Sword up for the others to
see. A single look at the white symbol on the hilt, depicting an open human
hand, allayed whatever fears they might have had. Here was Woundhealer, the
very Sword they had come looking for.
Ben, with grim satisfaction, strapped on the Sword of Mercy. Then
he turned, his eyes sweeping the horizon, warily ready for someone to challenge
him for his prize.
Valdemar studied him for a moment, then turned away, once more
examining the fallen on the field.
"What are you looking for?" asked Yambu.
"I want to see if any of them are still alive."
Indeed one of the fallen, and only one, still breathed. Evidently he
had managed to drag himself under a bush, and so lay relatively protected from
the sun, the scavengers, and discovery.
Ben on getting a look at the fallen man at once recognized Sergeant Brod.
"This is the very one I wrestled with."
The squat leader of the bandits, his chest rising and falling
laboriously under his leather vest, lay in a welter of his own dried blood,
dagger still clutched in his right hand, not many meters from the treasure the
two armed factions must have been struggling to possess. Either he had not
known Woundhealer was there, or he had been too badly hurt to reach it.
Valdemar cried out suddenly, his voice for no apparent reason
argumentative: "Ben! If that's really the Sword of Healing, you'd better
use it!"
Ben, faintly puzzled, looked at the young giant in wary silence.
"Use it, I say!" Valdemar sounded angry. "The man
is dying. Even if he was your enemy."
"Did you think I wouldn't use it?" Ben asked mildly.
Stooping, he grabbed Sergeant Brod by both ankles and pulled his inert weight
roughly straight out from under the bush, evoking a noisy breath that might
have been a gasp of pain, had the victim been fully conscious.
Valdemar looked slightly surprised and vaguely disappointed, as
if he had been ready for a confrontation with Ben.
Bending over the fallen man once more, Ben pulled the dagger from
Brod's hand, and took the added precaution of kicking out of his reach another
weapon which had fallen nearby.
"Just in case," he muttered. "Actually, I look
forward to speaking with an eyewitness of this skirmish. Might be a help, even
if we can't believe much of what he says."
Once more Ben delayed briefly, this time to search the pockets of
the fallen man, and his belt pouch. Evidently the search turned up nothing of
any particular interest.
Then Ben, who was no stranger to the Sword of Mercy and its
powers, postponed the act no longer, but employed Woundhealer boldly, thrusting the broad blade
squarely and deeply into the victim's chest.
Valdemar flinched involuntarily at the sight. Zoltan and Yambu,
more experienced observers of Swords' powers, watched calmly.
The bright Sword's entry into flesh was bloodless— though it cut a
broad hole in the Sarge's leather vest, which Ben had not bothered to open—and
the application of healing power was accompanied by a sound like soft human
breath.
Recovery, as usual when accomplished through the agency of
Woundhealer, was miraculously speedy and complete. The man, his color and
energy restored, sat up a moment after the Sword had been withdrawn from his
body. He looked down at his pierced and bloodied garments, then thrust a huge
hand inside his vest and shirt and felt of his own skin, whole again.
A moment later Brod, now staring suspiciously at Ben, got his legs
under him and sprang to his feet with an oath. "What in all the hells do
ye think yer doing?"
Ben stared at him with distaste. "What am I doing?" he
rumbled. "I may have just made a serious mistake."
The Sarge was scowling now at the Sword in the other's hand.
"Reckon you know that's my proppity you got there?"
No one answered him. Ben slowly resheathed Woundhealer at his
belt. He grunted: "You might express your thanks."
Brod turned slowly, confronting each of his four rescuers in
turn. When he found himself facing the lady, he introduced himself to her,
using some extravagant gestures and words.
Yambu was neither much impressed nor much amused. "I am not
the one who healed you, fellow."
Brod finally, reluctantly, awkwardly, thanked Ben.
"I had a reason." Ben gestured at the field of death by which they were surrounded.
"Now entertain us with a story about your little skirmish here. And you
might as well tell the truth for once."
"You think I'd lie?"
"The possibility had crossed my mind."
Protesting his invariable truthfulness, Brod began to talk. He
told his rescuers that his worst problem had been surviving the scavengers,
having half a dozen times come close, he thought, to being eaten alive. He said
that whenever he had regained consciousness he had waved his dagger at the
predators, and by that means managed to keep them at bay.
Moving about a little, surveying the field, he grimaced at the
sight of his fallen comrades, their bodies stabbed by Blue Temple blades and
gnawed by scavengers. But the Sarge was able to be philosophical about their
loss. "The magic hasn't been made yet that'll do any of these a bit of
good."
Meanwhile Zoltan had quietly borrowed the Sword of Mercy from Ben,
approached the injured loadbeast, and tried Woundhealer on the leg which it
kept favoring, listening meanwhile to Ben's ongoing interrogation of Sergeant
Brod. It did not sound like Ben was managing to learn anything of importance.
Almost at the Sword's first touch, the animal's braying ceased,
and the wound disappeared from its leg. It looked at Zoltan in mild
satisfaction, accepting with inhuman complacency its miraculous return to
health. The young man rubbed its head before it turned aside to graze along the
riverbank.
By now the Sarge, in response to insistent, probing questions from
Ben and the Silver Queen, had launched upon a rambling and at least generally
plausible explanation of just how the fight for Woundhealer had come about between his gang and
the Blue Temple people. The latter, Brod said, had been in the process of
escorting the Sword of Healing back to their headquarters, and had hoped to
engage the bandits—at a ridiculously low fee, according to Brod—as additional
guards.
He complained bitterly about Blue Temple stinginess, which he said
he was sure lay at the root of their treacherous behavior.
Zoltan, his cynical amusement growing as he listened, thought that
this Sarge was not so much a dedicated enemy of truth and Tasavalta, as a
complete opportunist.
Brod, his imagination now warmed by the fact that his audience so
far seemed to believe him, began to stretch his story. Now, it seemed, the
Sarge had been trying for some time to get the Sword of Healing for the noble
Prince Mark of Tasavalta.
Ben and Zoltan exchanged glances in which amusement and outrage
were mingled.
Yambu appeared to share their sentiments. But by now she had moved
a little apart from the others, and, sitting on a rock in deep thought, did not
seem to be giving much thought to the Sarge and his tall tales.
Valdemar now was looking with distrust and disgust at the man
whose rescue he had insisted upon.
Brod returned Valdemar's gaze with some curiosity, and demanded to
know this young giant's name. When he had been told, his next question was:
"Ever do any wrestling?"
"Some."
"Ah. Aha! Maybe you and I should try a fall or two one
day."
"I don't know why." Valdemar did not appear at all
interested in the challenge.
Brod shrugged. "Have it your way." He squinted once more at Ben and Zoltan.
"Atmosphere's a little chilly in these parts. Guess maybe I'll be on my
way."
"An excellent idea," said Ben shortly, standing with his
powerful arms folded.
Brod made a casual move to rearm himself, bending as if to pick up
a fallen weapon or two from the field, but this action was cut short by a sharp
"No" from Ben.
Brod straightened. "What?"
"Don't pick up any tools. Just start walking." Zoltan
too was watching Brod closely, and Zoltan's hand was on the hilt of his own
serviceable sword.
The bandit leader, all injured innocence, loudly protested,
"You'd send me away as nekkid as a babe? Man's got a right to protect
himself, don't he? There's wild animals in these parts." He paused, as if
gathering breath to deliver the ultimate argument, then spat: "There's
bandits!"
"Get walking," said Ben quietly. "Before I change
my mind."
Brod turned. "Lady Yambu? A high-born lady like you
wouldn’t..." His voice died, withered by the expression on Yambu's face.
Ben, his right hand on the hilt of one of his two belted Swords—the
one devoid of healing power—continued to consider the Sergeant thoughtfully.
Brod fidgeted uncomfortably under this inspection. He glowered,
but then with an obvious effort, he smiled, achieving at least a pretense of
gratitude and cooperation. "All right. All right. Maybe you're right. I'm
going, just the way you want."
The others, remaining more or less suspicious, watched him walk a
semicircle, first, as if completely undecided as to which way he wanted to go.
Then the Sarge moved in the direction of the ford, and went downstream along
the near bank of the river. On reaching the grounded flatboat, a hundred meters
or so from where his watchers stood, Brod waded to it and climbed aboard. There he helped
himself to the small boat that still was lashed to the deck, loosing the
lashings, and manhandling the small craft into the water.
Zoltan, idly pulling the long thongs of his hunting sling through
his free hand, commented: "Might be some weapons there."
Ben shrugged. "Let him help himself; as long as he keeps
moving, away from us."
Now that Ben had the Sword of Healing securely at his belt, he had
only one thought: to be done with worrying about Brod and other unimportant
matters, and convey his new treasure quickly back to Sarykam.
Another gray Tasavaltan messenger-bird arrived at this point, as
if it had been waiting for the Sarge, antagonistic as he was to Ben, to take
himself away. Ben made welcome use of the opportunity to dispatch a written
note to Mark, informing the Prince that his friends had now acquired the
long-desired Sword.
Then Ben, Valdemar, Yambu, and Zoltan all availed themselves of
Woundhealer, clearing up all of their own hurts, old and new; the most recent
of these being a couple of minor injuries sustained by Ben in the course of his
wrestling bout and subsequent escape from the flat-boat.
Accepting the Sword of Mercy, Yambu murmured: "This knee is
wont to give me problems ..." And with a surgeon's steady hand, she pulled
up one leg of her gray trousers, and thrust the hurtless Blade straight into
the pale skin . . .
There was no pain, and of course she had not thought there would
be any. But the shock was unexpected, and tremendous, far greater than she had
anticipated. In the instant when Woundhealer entered Yambu's body the world
changed, subtly but powerfully. Her chronically sore knee was healed, but the nagging pain
and its relief were alike forgotten, in the simultaneous curing of a greater,
deeper anguish, so long endured that the Silver Queen had ceased to be consciously
aware of it at all.
So long endured ... ever since that day of evil memory, almost a
score of years ago, when she had overcome the Dark King's army with Soulcutter
in her hands.
"Ah ..." said she who had once been the Silver Queen,
and let the black hilt of this far different blade slide from her grip. The
Sword of Love fell to the earth. She stood for a moment with head thrown back,
a woman overtaken by some sudden fundamental pain, or ecstasy—no human,
watching, could have said, in that first moment, which . . .
The paroxysm shook her for no more than a handful of heartbeats.
Then Yambu could move again.
There were no mirrors at hand, and for long moments she could only
marvel silently at the way her companions, open-mouthed, were staring at her now.
And even more strongly did the Silver Queen wonder at her own
internal sensations, when she paused to savor them. This, this, she could
remember now, was what it felt like to be fully alive.
At last she demanded: "What is it? Why do you all stare at
me?" But in her heart she thought that she already knew the important
part of the answer.
"My lady..." This was Zoltan, her traveling companion
for several years, now suddenly hushed and reverent. "My lady, you have
grown young again."
Ben, his ugly countenance a study in awe, was nodding soberly.
Valdemar stood gaping.
"Young again? Nonsense!" And to confirm that it was
nonsense the Silver Queen could see strands of her own long hair, still gray,
drifting before her eyes. She could clearly see her own hands, weathered and
worn, not at all the hands of a young girl.
Yet even as Yambu contradicted Zoltan, she felt that he must be
speaking some fundamental truth.
"You are all looking at me so ... has anyone a mirror?"
What had seemed almost a spell was broken. Zoltan's thought was
that there might possibly be a mirror in one of the Blue Temple or bandit packs
that now lay scattered about. He went to look.
Ben agreed, and joined the search. But he failed to prosecute this
effort vigorously, stopping every few seconds to turn and look back at the
Silver Queen.
Valdemar was in this case the most practical of the four. He said
nothing, but went a little apart to squat on the very shoreline of the river,
where he scooped up sand with his huge hands, and splashed and puddled water
into a concave excavation, muttering the while. When his efforts at magic had
born fruit, he lifted from the bank a kind of reflective glass, as broad as a
human countenance, formed by the solidification of warm river water.
The object he handed to Yambu was as heavy as liquid water but no
heavier or colder, flat and mirror-smooth on one face, rough as stone on its
round edge and convex back. "My lady, be assured that the glass as I give
it to you is completely honest."
Accepting the gift, Lady Yambu stared into the brilliant surface.
There was no denying it, she now looked forty again, or even slightly younger,
instead of the sixty she had appeared to be before Woundhealer touched her—or
her true age of fifty-one.
Her hair was still white, or nearly so; but this alteration in
color now appeared premature. Lines of tension and weariness, so long-engraved
she had forgotten they were there, had been expunged from the face which now
looked back at her, in which a long-vanished light and beauty had now been
re-established. This was the countenance of no mere girl, but neither was it any longer old.
Zoltan, who had been her fellow pilgrim for several years,
continued to stare at Yambu in timid awe, as if she were a stranger.
It was time now for the others to enjoy their turns at gaining
what benefit they might from the Sword of Mercy's power. None of the three
underwent any visible transformation. Ben stretched and groaned with the enjoyment
of having several minor aches and pains removed, as a tired man might luxuriate
in a massage. Valdemar was silent and thoughtful as Woundhealer's blade
searched his flesh for damage; the youth had evidently not accumulated much.
When Zoltan had had his turn, it was time to make camp for the
night. Even freshly healed, they were tired enough to camp where they were,
right by the ford, with water readily available. But the dozen dead still held
that field, and none of the four were minded to spend their own time and energy
as a burial or cremation detail.
Another problem with this location lay in the fact that Brod would
be able to find them easily should he return with some mischief in mind. But
these were minor considerations beside the counsel of the Sword of Wisdom.
It was Yambu who at last put the question directly to Wayfinder:
"Where is our safest place to camp tonight?" And the Sword promptly
pointed them across the ford, away from the field of death.
Before leaving the battlefield, Valdemar did as Brod had been
forbidden to do. He armed himself with two of the many weapons, now ownerless,
that lay about for the taking.
From one fallen soldier Valdemar chose a battle-hatchet, and from
another one a dagger, with its sheath. He had to unbuckle this last tool from
its owner's stiffened corpse. The business was unpleasant, but still he did it
without hesitating.
He muttered to himself: "If I am to be a warrior, I am going
to need a warrior's tools."
Zoltan asked him: "Have you any skill with those?"
"Not with weapons. But knives and hatchets are familiar
implements enough."
"Then I suppose you've chosen well."
Having forded the river, the four headed northeast by north, still
following the Sword of Wisdom in Ben's hands.
Following them, for a short distance only, came the healed
loadbeast.
The creature paused, watching them depart. Then it shook its head
and went back to where grass grew along the river.
ATOP the highest tower of the sprawling white stone Palace in
Sarykam, standing on a paved rooftop that overlooked the red-roofed city, the
placid harbor, and the Eastern Sea red-rimmed with dawn, Prince Mark of
Tasavalta, wearing nightshirt and slippers, wrapped in a robe against the
morning chill, was leaning on a railing, gazing to the south and west, waiting
and hoping for the arrival of one of his numerous winged messengers or scouts.
Dawn was a good time, the most likely time in all the day, for
certain birds, the night-flying class of owl-like scouts and messengers, to
come home.
The Prince of Tasavalta was a tall man, strongly built, his face
worn by weather and by care, his age just under forty, his hair and eyes brown,
his manner distracted.
The semi-intelligent creature whose arrival Mark was anticipating
presently became visible in the dawn sky as a faraway dot that in time grew
into a pair of laboring wings.
Twelve-year-old Stephen, Mark's younger son, already fully
dressed, joined his father on the rooftop, as he did on many mornings, to see
whether any messengers might arrive.
The boy was sturdily built, his hair darkening to the medium-brown of his
father's. The facial resemblance between father and son was growing stronger
year by year.
The beastmaster attending the eyrie this morning was a man of
exceptionally keen vision. He was the first to confirm the distant wings, now
laboring in from the southwest, as those of a particular messenger-bird, whose
arrival had been expected for more than a day.
The beastmaster climbed up on a perch to meet and care for the
animal, which on landing turned out to have suffered some slight injury from
the claws of a leather-wing. The Prince and his son, climbing also, were first
to touch the large owl-like creature. Mark gently took from around its neck the
small flat pouch of thin leather.
The great bird, its huge eyes narrowed to slits against the early
daylight, hooted and whistled out a few words indicating that it had been
delayed for some hours by storms as well as reptiles.
Leaving the bird to the beastmaster's professional care, Mark
carried the pouch down from the perch. After hastily performing a magical test
for safety, he snapped open the container and extracted the single piece of
paper which lay inside.
Unfolding the note, Mark read, silently the first time through.
The message had been sent by Ben of Purkinje.
"Is it from Ben, Father?"
"Yes. He's several days away from Sarykam, or he was when he
wrote this ..." The Prince read on, skimming bad news, not wishing to
contemplate any more of that than absolutely necessary.
"Ben's coming home?"
Mark's face altered. He stared at the note, his mind almost numbed
by the two code words that leapt out at him from near the end. Almost he feared
to allow himself to hope, let alone to triumph.
Putting down the paper for the moment, he looked around to make
sure that no one but his son was close enough to hear him.
"Ben mentions an earlier message," he announced softly,
"and repeats it here, to the effect that he has found Wayfinder. We never
got that message. Some are bound to go astray."
"Dad! That means—if we've got Wayfinder—that means we can use
it to find Woundhealer. Doesn't it?"
Mark held up the note. "We could, but there's more. He
already has Woundhealer too."
"Dad!"
"He also says here that he's encountered old friends, your
cousin Zoltan, and the Lady Yambu. I don't know if you remember her."
"What are we going to do?"
Mark grinned. "What would you do if you were in
command?"
"Go get those Swords at once!"
"Not a very difficult decision, hey?"
But there was a considerably harder choice to be made immediately:
Whether to let the news of Ben's evident success spread through the Palace, and
thence inevitably, before long, into the ears of enemy agents. The boost in home
morale that this news should produce would be welcome, but if the effort to
bring Woundhealer home came to nothing, a corresponding letdown would ensue.
Stephen was staring anxiously at his father. Mark commanded the
boy to tell no one else the content of Ben's message for the time being. The
Sword was not yet safely home.
When Stephen had been given a chance to read the note for himself,
father and son, teasing and challenging each other like two twelve-year-olds,
went skipping and jumping down a set of ladders to the next lowest level of the tower, and thence down
several levels to the broader roof of the keep below.
There, moving decisively, the Prince quietly began to set in
motion preparations for an expedition to reclaim Woundhealer.
Stephen, as his father had expected, wanted to come along.
"Father, will you be leaving right away?"
"Within a few hours."
"Can I come with you?"
Mark made quick calculations. "No, you'll be needed
here."
The refusal sent Stephen into a silent rage; he asked no
questions, said nothing at all, but his face reddened and his jaw set.
Mark sighed; knowing his son, he was not surprised. He had no
reason to expect or hope that this boy might be sheltered from danger all his
life, and every reason to believe that the lad had better be hardened to it.
The Prince would probably have acceded to his son's request to join the
expedition but for one fact: Stephen seemed to be the only person capable of
brightening his mother's countenance or manner in the least.
Mark explained this point. Then he repeated his refusal, couching
it this time in terms of military orders, which made the pill somewhat easier
to swallow.
When Stephen choked on another protest, his father ordered
briskly: "Get control of yourself and speak coherently."
"Yes, Father." And the boy managed. He was learning.
"Now. This is an order ..."
With Stephen under control, for the time being at least, the
Prince's next impulse was to rush to Kristin with the good news.
But then on thinking the matter over, he was not sure how much he
ought to tell his wife.
Catching sight of a junior officer going about some other errand,
Mark hailed the man and dispatched him to find General Rostov.
Proceeding in the direction of his wife's room, Mark encountered
the chief physician of the Palace, a tall woman with a dark, forbidding,
ageless face and kindly voice.
This lady inquired: "Good news, Highness?"
"Yes. Or the possibility of good news, at least. I will be
making an announcement presently." Yet Mark hesitated; it would be
terrible, he thought again, to raise hopes that might in a few days be dashed.
Since Kristin's fall, neither physicians nor wizards had ever been
sanguine about her prospects for recovery. None of the experts saw any real
hope, unless the Sword of Healing could somehow be obtained.
The physician said: "I have just come from Her High-ness's
room."
"What word today?"
She bowed slightly. "Your Highness, I have no good words to
say to you."
Mark interrupted the doctor at that point, and dispatched Stephen
to look for Uncle Karel. "And when you have found him, I expect it will be
time you are about your regular morning tasks."
"Yes, Father."
When Prince and physician were alone, the healer went on gloomily
to explain that she had quietly alerted the attendants to maintain a watch
against a possible suicide attempt on the part of the long-suffering patient.
"As bad as that." Mark was not really surprised; but no
mental preparation could shield him from the chill brought by those words.
"I fear so, Prince."
"Well, well." He could still force his voice to be calm.
"Carry on. We will do what we can."
The doctor bowed again, and moved away.
Mark had not progressed a dozen paces farther in the direction of
his wife's room before he encountered General Rostov, who seemed already to
have learned somehow that important matters were to be decided.
Rostov was as tall as Mark, but the general's barrel-chested frame
was even broader. He had black skin, with an old scar on the right cheek. His
curly hair had once been black, but was now almost entirely gray.
Drawing Rostov aside, Mark quietly outlined for him the expedition
he wanted to lead out to gain possession of both Swords.
"Karel will be going with you?" Rostov asked.
"He will." Mark considered that Kristin's uncle, the
chief wizard of the royal family and of the nation, would be indispensable on
such an expedition. "Therefore you will be left in charge here at the
Palace."
After providing the Prince with requested advice on several
points, and receiving a few detailed orders, Rostov saluted and moved away,
going about his business with his usual efficiency.
The Prince at last reached his wife's room and entered.
The Princess was occupying the same chamber as before her injury,
though now the room was even more brightly decorated. Cheerful paintings, some
of Kristin's favorites in her days of health, hung on the walls, and her
favorite flowers stood in vases, or grew in pots. Everything about the place
was joyous, airy, lightsome, and pleasant—everything except for its occupant,
who lay garbed in a plain white gown, her countenance like a mask of clay.
Originally the nurses and other attendants assigned to care for
the crippled Princess had been chosen as much for their cheerful attitude as
for their professional ability.
But those people had been replaced, when Kristin, complaining
bitterly to her husband, had said she could not stand having such laughing
fools around her.
This morning Kristin was in her bed as usual. She was capable of
leaving it only seldom and briefly. Her body, always slender, was twisted now
by broken bones that had healed only poorly, and by spasmed muscles. Her face,
once beautiful, had been eroded from within by pain and loss of weight. Indoor
pallor had replaced her tan.
Other than to utter an occasional grim comment on her own future,
or lack of one, Kristin now rarely spoke.
Pulling a chair close to the bed, Mark sat down and gave his wife
a partial report on the information that had just arrived by courier. Mark said
only that there was new hope now, and that he would soon be leaving town in
search of Woundhealer.
The Prince took this precaution against raising hopes that might
be dashed, though in the bleak silence of his own thoughts he felt sure that
the problem with Kristin was really the absence of any hope at all.
Mark took his wife's hand, but then let it go when the touch
seemed to cause her some new discomfort.
Kristin appeared to listen to what her husband had to say, but she
made no comment. Obviously her attitude regarding the news was one of bitter
pessimism.
Her husband was saddened but not surprised by this reaction. That,
he had learned, was consistently the disposition of his wife's mind whatever
news he brought, or when, as was more usual, he had none to bring.
After leaving the sickroom, Mark found the old wizard Karel
waiting for him, a fat old man with puffing breath and a rich, soft voice.
Karel, on learning of the morning's message, was in a hopeful
mood.
"I might suggest, Prince, that you send a strong flying
squadron to pick up the prize and carry it back to us, as we ride south. If
this plan is successful, it would speed up your gaining possession of the Sword
by a day or two at least."
Mark was impressed favorably by the old man's suggestion, but he
postponed making a final decision on it. If he were eventually to decide in
favor of such a maneuver, there would be no need to tell Ben about it in advance.
So the Prince omitted any mention of the scheme in the message he now began
drafting to be carried back to Ben.
As Mark considered it, strong arguments took shape in his mind
against sending such a flying squad. Chief among these was the fact that any
such half-intelligent flying force would run the risk of being detected, and
then ambushed, by enemy magic, flying reptiles, or griffins. No birds were
strong enough to stand against such an attack.
Wood himself, who Mark loathed as one of his great antagonists,
was known to travel airborne on a griffin, or sometimes even on a demon's back.
The danger presented by the possibility of ambush eventually came
to seem too great. By the time he had dispatched the message to Ben, Mark had
all but finally decided not to take the risk.
Shortly after sunset the Lady Yambu, her new reserves of energy
not fully depleted by a long day's hike, was pacing restlessly about the simple
camp she shared with her three companions. The conversation that had begun a
quarter of an hour ago had gradually died out, and the three were now all
watching her in vague apprehension.
Suddenly she stopped her pacing, and declared: "I think I
must consult our Sword again. I grow doubtful that the road I must follow to the truth
lies through Tasavalta."
Ben looked at her, grunted, then wordlessly detached Wayfinder in
its sheath from his belt, and held the weapon out to her.
Valdemar's expression suggested that he was surprised. He said to
Yambu: "If you are having doubts, then I must have doubts also."
For several days now, the four had been slogging steadily
northeast, in the general direction of Tasavalta. The land through which they
traveled had gradually grown more rugged, and their progress had become correspondingly
slower.
Now and then the Sword they followed decreed some slight variation
in their course toward Sarykam. When this happened, the four travelers sometimes
speculated about the possible cause of this deflection. But none of the three
who had considerable experience with the awesome power of Swords suggested
doing anything but going along with Wayfinder. And the detours, whatever their
cause, had proven short. At the moment the four were once more, as nearly as
they could estimate in this almost roadless waste, on or near a straight-line
path toward the Tasavaltan capital.
Over the last few days and hours, Yambu had started several tunes
to ask Ben more about what the Emperor had said to him regarding Ariane. But
Ben, who had suggested such a conversation, no longer seemed to know what else
he wanted to say, or hear, on that subject.
The lady was about to raise the matter with Ben again. But before
she could do so, the travelers were excited by the arrival of a winged
messenger.
Eagerly Ben unfastened the pouch from the great bird, and fumbled
it open. Intently he scanned the note inside.
Zoltan read it over his shoulder. "Nothing of importance,"
the young man complained.
"Better than it looks," Ben assured him. "There are
a couple of code words. First, congratulations—that'll be for our getting
Woundhealer. And second, help is on the way."
Their spirits considerably lightened, the four pushed on.
Within an hour, they had became aware that someone was following
them, maintaining a careful distance.
"Your old friend Brod," Zoltan decided, squinting at the
distant, barely visible man who doubtless thought himself adequately concealed.
"We should have finished him when we had the chance. I suppose he went off
in the little boat just to be deceptive."
"Why should he be following us?" Valdemar wondered.
Ben shrugged. "His gang's been wiped out, and he's going to
have to find some other way to make a living."
The Silver Queen had no comment; her thoughts were evidently
elsewhere.
That evening, she spoke confidingly to her old friends Ben and
Zoltan, and her new follower Valdemar.
"I am almost a girl again ... no, I don't mean that. What
foolishness! I am fifty-one years old, and healing will not turn back the
years; age in itself is not an illness or an injury. But in a way I feel like a
girl. The horrible burden that Soulcutter put on me so many years ago has at
last been lifted. Can you understand what that means? No, there is no way you
could understand."
And in her emotion the lady laughed and cried, in a mixture of joy
and confusion; the emotional reaction which had come upon her when she was
healed was now repeated, even more strongly than before.
"Can you understand? I can no longer be certain what my
purpose in life is, or ought to be."
"I think I can understand, my lady." Ben's large hand pulled the Sword she had
given them out of its sheath; he held the black hilt out toward her.
Zoltan nodded; it was a slow, uncertain gesture, as if he had
trouble comprehending the Lady's difficulty, but considered that Wayfinder's
powerful medicine ought to be worth a try in any case.
Once more gripping Wayfinder, Lady Yambu posed a new question.
"Blade, once more I seek your guidance. Was I speaking only
foolishness when I asked you to find eternal truth for me? You answered me, I
know, but... I am no longer sure what I was thinking two days ago. It is almost
as if I have been reborn."
The Sword of Wisdom hung inert in her grasp. Of course. The
question she had just asked, as Yambu understood full well, was not the kind
Wayfinder could be expected to answer.
"Take your time, my lady." Ben was respectfully concerned.
The trouble, Yambu was discovering, was that she now found herself
unable to formulate any inquiry to her own satisfaction. Indecisively she
raised the Sword, and lowered it, and raised it up again.
At last, words burst forth: "Was my healing the only truth I
needed? I have been granted the touch of the Sword of Mercy . . . but again,
that is not the kind of question any Sword can answer for me, is it?"
Even as she spoke, Yambu was wishing that she had gone off by
herself to so apostrophize Wayfinder. Certainly the others were watching and
listening with intense interest. But now, as if he were embarrassed, Ben motioned
to the two younger men, and all of them moved away, leaving the Lady alone with
Wayfinder.
The mute Sword only quivered uncertainly, in response to the
questioner's uncertainty.
"Changeable, are you? At least you are a silent counselor,
and there's wisdom to be found in that."
Rejoining the others, she sought out Valdemar, and held out the
black hilt of the sheathed Sword. Yambu said: "I am having but poor
success. Will you try it for yourself once more?"
The young man in farmer's clothing hesitated, then shook his head
doggedly. "No, I have already used Wayfinder more than once, and each time
it has led me to you. My purpose has not changed. So, for now, let me continue
as I am."
"Even if I have changed? If I no longer know where I am
going?"
The young man smiled faintly. "Very well then, let me try the
Sword once more."
As steadily as ever, the Sword of Wisdom with its black hilt once
more in the huge hands of Valdemar, pointed straight toward the Silver Queen.
He returned the weapon to her hilt-first, making an almost courtly
flourish. He said: "I am content to follow, Lady, whatever you decide to
do."
She sighed. "Then let your fate be on your own head."
THIS night it was Valdemar's turn to stand the last watch, the
hours just before dawn.
At the proper time Ben woke him, and silently held out to him the
black hilt of the Sword of Wisdom, with which his comrades were to be protected
as they slept.
The young man sat up, the folds of his blanket falling from around
his massive shoulders, and held both hands to his head for a long moment before
he accepted Way-finder.
"Bad dreams?" Ben inquired in a low voice.
"No. Yes, I think so, but I don't remember." Valdemar
shook his head. "I keep worrying about my vineyard."
"Once upon a time," said Ben, "when I was very young,
all I wanted out of life was to be a minstrel. I really thought that I could be
one, too. Carried a lute around with me everywhere. Can you believe that?"
"Yes, I can," said the other after a moment's thought.
"Were you any good?" he asked with interest.
Ben appeared to consider the question seriously. "No,"
he said at last, and turned away. "Me for my own blanket."
Valdemar began his watch in routine fashion, by asking the Sword
of Wisdom a question concerning the safety of the camp. Testing the limits on the kind of
question the Sword would answer, he tended to keep trying new variations.
Tonight's first variant was: "Will we be safer if we move?"
To this query the Sword in Valdemar's hands returned him no detectable
answer; he presumed that Wayfinder would have pointed in the proper direction
had its powers decided that the camp would indeed be more secure somewhere
else.
The general safety assured, for the moment at least, to the
sentry's satisfaction, he asked his second question of this watch. This one was
whispered so softly that he could not hear his own words. "Where is the
nearest person present whose advice I should be following?"
The Sword of Wisdom indicated Yambu, who appeared to be fast
asleep.
Valdemar nodded. Carrying Wayfinder drawn and ready, he paced the
vicinity of the small camp, applying the good sentry's technique he had learned
from his new friends. He varied his route and pace, turning sharply at
irregular intervals, eyes and ears alert to the surrounding darkness. He kept
his eyes averted from the small fire's brightness to preserve their sensitivity
in the dark.
Meanwhile his routine worries returned. Counting the days he had
already been away from home, confirming his estimate of the advancing season by
the current phase of the Moon, Valdemar knew with certainty that his vines
would soon be leafing out, and would need care. He had done all he could for
the plants before he left, but they would soon be growing wild, and insects
would attack them.
He lacked the skills of magic necessary to do anything effective
about these problems at a distance, though of course he could try. Valdemar
doubted whether he could project any potent spells against insects, at least
not over more than a few meters. He'd make the effort, of course, but not now. Right now he
had to concentrate upon his duties as a guard.
Once more he put a safety question to the Sword, on the chance
that circumstances had changed adversely in the past few minutes. Once more Wayfinder
seemed to assure him that all was well.
Time continued to pass uneventfully. Ben had hardly hit the ground
before falling fast asleep, as a faint rumble of snoring testified. The night
wind ghosted past Valdemar's ears, and the moon and the familiar stars, though
only intermittently visible through a patchwork of clouds, moved in their
familiar paths above his head.
Where, he wondered suddenly, was Woundhealer resting at this
moment? He tried to remember who had been carrying the Sword of Mercy. Then, in
the course of his next sharp turn as he patrolled, the young man, peering
intently by the vague light of stars and moon, caught a glimpse of the black
hilt. The Sword was currently in Zoltan's custody, its shape unmistakable
within its wrappings, lying in contact with his sleeping body.
All was well, then. Valdemar relaxed though he reminded himself
sternly to remain alert. But as his watch dragged on, he strayed into asking
Wayfinder one private question after another, only to realize guiltily once
more that long moments had passed in which the Sword of Wisdom was no longer
really charged with protecting the camp.
Tonight he was not only worried about his vineyard, but also
bothered by particular concerns about his bride-to-be. As pictured in his
imagination, she was a creature of unsurpassed loveliness. But her existence,
as anything but a creation of his own imagination, he had begun to doubt.
Lost intermittently in these problems, Valdemar continued his
pacing, circling the small campfire on an irregular path, the Sword of Wisdom
naked in his right hand, a battle-hatchet belonging to some fallen warrior
stuck in his farmer's belt.
At the moment his half-distracted mind presented Wayfinder with a
new inquiry for the benefit of himself and the sleeping three: "Which way
to go to foil our enemies? Which way to go—"
This time the Sword returned him a firm answer; generally
northeast, the direction of their daytime travel.
Then Valdemar stopped, listening to himself. Actually, of course,
neither he nor any of his three companions wanted to go anywhere at the
moment—right now they all wanted to get some rest.
But how hard it was, thought Valdemar as he paced on again, for a
man to know consistently what, beyond the physical necessities of the moment,
he really wanted to do, to achieve. The world held so many kinds of things to
want.
Anticipating the first rays of dawn, the young man found it
impossible to keep his mind with absolute consistency upon the camp's defense.
Then he would silently upbraid himself, and once more stalk about in his random
pattern holding the Sword, and murmur: "I seek the safety of this camp. I
seek the safety of this—"
Receiving no answer to what was not really a question, he would
shake his head and mutter: "No need to keep repeating things like that. No
need to keep repeating things ..."
An hour passed. All continued quiet, and nothing untoward
occurred.
And, as nothing in particular seemed to be happening, other
questions, other urges, drifted as subtly as growing vines into control of
Valdemar's mind.
Thus it was that the pacing, dreaming sentry was granted no
warning whatsoever. One moment he and his sleeping companions were, as far as
he knew, all safe, all at peace, save for the faint animal noises of the nocturnal
wasteland, sounds more reassuring than disturbing.
And in the next moment they were being overwhelmed.
The onslaught, as Valdemar came later to understand, was
well-coordinated, and consisted of an airborne magical component as well as a
force of more mundane attackers on the ground. Somewhere over the young man's
head there came a beating of great unseen wings, sounding far larger than
those of any flying creature Valdemar had ever seen or heard before;
simultaneously he heard a prosaic thunder of approaching hoofbeats on the
ground.
Letting out a hoarse cry Valdemar whirled about, brandishing his
Sword, unable for the first moment of the attack to see anything out of the ordinary
at all. Then suddenly the sentry found himself confronted by a live man
standing where a moment earlier there had been no one at all. The figure was
that of a warrior, sword upraised, garbed in the same Blue Temple colors worn
by half of yesterday's fallen.
For just a moment Valdemar was frozen by his own imagination, by
the terrible image of all those bodies he had helped to rob of food and shoes
and weapons, of those dead risen now to claim some kind of vengeance...
For a moment only. Then a second swordsman and a third
materialized behind the first out of darkness and the desert, and the young man
understood that his attackers were only too full of mundane life. He let out a
hoarse shout of alarm, realizing even as he did so that his warning must now be
too late.
But his companions were reacting very quickly. Around him, friends
and foes were scrambling in the darkness.
The first attacker recoiled from the camp's sentry, out of respect
for the Sword that Valdemar was holding, if
not for his gigantic figure. But now others were
coming at him from the sides—and now a gossamer net, more magic than material,
came dropping softly toward him from a great blurred form in the softly moonlit
sky.
Barely in time he twisted out from under the net, sensing its
enchantment. Drawn steel, Valdemar had heard, was the most effective
countermeasure an ordinary man could take against a wizard's onslaught, and
perhaps the Sword in his right hand, the battle-hatchet now drawn in his left,
exerted some measure of protection.
The Lady Yambu, who had been the closest of the other three to
Valdemar when the enemy appeared, now rose up at his side, hands spread in a
magician's gesture, joining him in his hopeless though spirited defense of the
camp.
Part of his mind noted that the Lady did not have Woundhealer—of
course, that Sword had been with Zoltan.
"Fight!" she snapped at Valdemar. "We must not let
ourselves be taken alive! Not by these—"
Valdemar, with no time to think, only grunted something in
return. Brandishing the battle-hatchet in one hand and Wayfinder in the other,
and confident in his own strength though mindful of his lack of skill, he faced
the enemy soldiers as what looked like a crowd of them came at him.
The young giant wielded both hatchet and Sword with ferocious
energy, and by sheer strength he succeeded in chopping down at least one of his
attackers.
To his surprise, the others fell back momentarily. The Silver
Queen had become a shadow gliding at Valdemar's side, and afforded him some
unexpected but very welcome magical assistance.
Still, the odds in favor of the enemy were overwhelming, and they
were returning to the attack. *
* *
Zoltan had come wide awake, alerted by some subliminal
perception, two or three heartbeats before the attack actually fell on the
camp. He was fully conscious and active in an instant, and aware of Ben beside
him also springing to his feet. Both were veterans, who needed only a momentary
glimpse of the assailants surrounding Yambu and Valdemar, the latter fighting
with the Sword of Wisdom, to convince them that the odds were hopeless. But so
far Zoltan and Ben were not surrounded; rather, they were at one side of the
struggle, and escape appeared to be still possible.
Getting the Sword of Mercy back to Tasavalta came ahead of
everything else. Zoltan, with Woundhealer already in his hands, unsheathed the
Blade and without hesitation plunged it deep into his own body, holding himself
transfixed with a hand on the black hilt. With his other hand he pulled his own
short sword from its scabbard, and used it to run through the first enemy
trooper to come at him in the dimness of the fading night. The trooper's dying
counterstroke cut down on Zoltan's left shoulder, and might have nearly taken
off his arm, had not Woundhealer's overwhelmingly benign force prevailed. The
enemy's sword fell free, Zoltan's wound closing behind it so quickly that he
lost no blood.
Ben, who had been unarmed except for a short knife and Wayfinder,
grabbed up the fallen weapon, and killed two men with it in the next few
moments of confusion.
Zoltan was running now, with Ben beside him, away from the
beleaguered Yambu and her young ally. Zoltan struck down another attacker,
receiving another harmless sword-slash in the process and Ben smashed another
foe aside. Both of them kept on running, their backs to the noise and turmoil
surrounding Valdemar and the Silver Queen.
A flying reptile came lowering out of the sky at Zoltan, talons
biting harmlessly, almost painlessly, into his head and face, which were still
protected by the magic of the gods. One claw bit through his eye and did no
harm, his vision clearing once more with a blink. He could hear, below the
harsh gasping of his own lungs, the softly breathing sound made by the Sword of
Mercy, mending this new damage to his body as quickly as it happened.
Even as his eyesight cleared, Zoltan's killing sword bit into the
airborne reptile's guts. He heard the beast scream, and then fall heavily to earth
behind him as he ran on.
Ben kept pounding along beside him, so far managing to keep up.
But now a net of magic fell about them both, a gossamer interference with
thought and movement that would have stretched them both out on the ground, had
not Zoltan been protected from all injury. His senses and his thought remained
clear, and he felt the evil magic only as he might have felt a cobweb tear
across his face.
Beside him, Ben staggered and stumbled in his run, and would have
fallen headlong had not Zoltan managed to sheath his own killing blade and
catch the huge man under one arm, pulling and hauling him through torn cobwebs.
Grunting with the effort, Zoltan kept Ben on his feet until the last shreds of
the magic net had been left behind them.
Still the young man had trouble believing that the two of them
were really going to get away; glancing back when they had run another fifty
meters, he decided that he and Ben were being greatly helped in their escape by
the fact that the attackers were concentrating so thoroughly on getting the
Sword of Wisdom into their hands.
Valdemar kept hearing someone in command of the Blue Temple forces
shouting orders to take that man alive. He knew the order referred to him.
There was nothing to do but fight on, Yambu's warning fresh in his mind, and
the Sword in his hands making it substantially harder for the enemy to do what they wanted.
If only, Valdemar prayed fervently, this Sword were Shield-breaker . . .
A rough ring of enemies kept forming around him and Yambu. But he
kept muttering rapidly at Wayfinder, asking the Sword of Wisdom to show him the
best way to escape. Then, keeping up as best he could with the Sword's rapidly
changing instructions, he charged bravely at one Blue Temple weak point after
another. The trouble was that soon there were no weak points in the rapidly
closing ring.
Yambu meanwhile stayed on her feet, moving with agility to remain
at Valdemar's back. She kept doing magical things, things he could not
comprehend, but that must be serving to keep the attackers at least temporarily
off balance.
But the odds were too great, their resistance could not last. The
enemy magic was stronger than the Silver Queen's if not than Wayfinder's. At
last Valdemar, the Sword in his hands notwithstanding, felt himself overwhelmed
by swirling powers, by rampaging physical forms. Gold and blue faintly visible
in moonlight, were everywhere around him. Whether the force that finally
overcame him was material or occult he could not have said, and anyway it
seemed to make no difference.
Dimly aware that the Lady Yambu was still nearby and shared his
fate, he was knocked down, disarmed, made prisoner. Then, with her limp and
evidently unconscious body being dragged beside Valdemar, both of them were
removed a short distance from their place of capture, to a place where a
strange bright light was shone on their faces, and their captors puzzled in
mumbling voices over their identity.
That question having been answered to the winners' satisfaction—or
else determined to be not quickly answerable, Valdemar could not tell
which—the pair were moved another short distance. There they were left on the
ground, seemingly temporarily abandoned.
Quickly Valdemar discovered that his arms and legs had been
efficiently paralyzed by magic. But within moments after those who threw him
down had turned away, he managed to shake free of some kind of cover, evidently
a material one, which had been thrown over his head.
His first use of this limited power of movement was to look for Zoltan
and Ben, wondering if they were still alive, and what had happened to
Woundhealer. Three or four meters away lay the dim, inert form of the Silver
Queen. The young man spoke to the lady quietly, but received no answer.
The attack, as Valdemar saw when he once more began to obtain a
clear view of his surroundings, had been carried out by a small but powerful
force of Blue Temple troops, magicians, and inhuman creatures. A few reptiles
had already come down out of the clouded, slowly brightening sky. Larger forms
were looming there.
Even as he watched, a pair of the giant wings he had earlier
sensed overhead came closer. A creature landed. Valdemar, harking back to
stories heard in childhood, realized that it must be a griffin. He could only
gaze in wonder.
This was a large creature, much bigger than a riding-beast, with
eagle's head and beak and wings, and legs and talons of a gigantic lion. Across
its back was strapped a kind of saddle, flanked on each side by a kind of hanging
woven basket, a sidecar or howdah. One or two men— Valdemar could not get a
clear look at first—were riding on the beast. There would have been room for
three, with a driver in the central saddle.
On the ground, the four-legged monster knelt, then crouched. The
first of the passengers to disembark was a
well-dressed man, short, redfaced and bald, who made
an awkward dismount from one of the sidecars.
Moments later, a second elderly Blue Temple official came into
Valdemar's field of vision. He was older and less ruddy of countenance than the
first. Valdemar could not be sure whether this man had disembarked from the
same mount, or from a slightly smaller griffin which had landed close behind
the first.
It was soon evident that the attacking force was commanded by the
rather short, red-faced man. Valdemar now heard this individual addressed as
Chairman Hyrcanus. The elder, obviously second in importance, was called the
Director.
Valdemar, with some difficulty raising his head a little farther
against the bonds of magic that still held him down, was able to watch and
listen as the Chairman expressed his satisfaction at having the solid ground
under his feet again.
Now from among the mixed group of Blue Temple military and
irregulars who had gathered there emerged a face, and a voice, that Valdemar to
his surprise could recognize. Chairman Hyrcanus was greeted by Sergeant Brod,
who came pushing forward from amidst the latest detachment of cavalry to reach
the scene.
At least the Sarge,' having somehow attached himself to the
attackers, made an attempt to offer the Chairman such a greeting.
But the official, scowling at this interloper, would not listen.
"Who're you?" Hyrcanus demanded; and then, before the man could
possibly have answered, turned irritably to his cavalry officer. "Who's
this?"
The officer seemed to shrink under his leader's glare. "The
man is a local guide we have signed on, Your Opulence. He's been useful—"
"Another expense, I suppose." The Chairman turned away
with an impatient gesture. "Get my pavilion up."
Thus brusquely rebuffed, Brod looked about. Catching sight of
Valdemar and Lady Yambu, he came to stand over them, an expression of
satisfaction gradually replacing the scowl on his ugly face.
"Reckon I've met you folks before. Good mornin' to ye."
"Good morning," said Valdemar, thinking he had nothing
to lose thereby. Yambu did not answer; the Lady's eyes were closed, her face
relaxed as if in sleep.
While Brod hovered nearby, evidently wondering what to do next,
Valdemar saw and heard the officer in command of the small Blue Temple cavalry
force, standing at attention before Hyrcanus, respectfully ask the Chairman if
there were any further orders? If not, his men had been riding all night and
were in need of rest.
Hyrcanus, abstractedly seeing to the careful unloading of a trunk
from one of the griffins' cargo baskets, gave the troops permission to rest,
once camp was properly established and a guard posted.
Then Hyrcanus, stretching and twisting his body as if he might be
cramped from a long ride, exchanged some words with his Director of Security.
Both men complained about the weariness and nervous strain brought on by this
regrettably necessary means of travel.
The Chairman also congratulated his Director of Security on the
fact that that gentleman's wits, such as they were, seemed to have been fully
restored.
The Director chuckled, dutifully and drily, at the little joke—if
such it was.
Then both of the Blue Temple executives, the Chairman in the
lead, came to gaze sourly at their prisoners.
Staring at the supine youth, Hyrcanus demanded: "Who are you,
fellow?"
"My name is Valdemar."
"That means nothing to me."
"You—are Chairman of the whole Blue Temple?"
Valdemar didn't know much about how such great organizations were
managed, or, really, what he would have expected their managers to be like—but
certainly he would have anticipated someone more impressive than this dumpy,
commonplace figure.
Brod, evidently still determined to gain points with the greatest
celebrity he had probably ever encountered, had edged his way forward, and now
took the opportunity to kick Valdemar energetically in the ribs.
"Show some respect to Chairman Hyrcanus!" the Sarge
barked.
Someone else, in the middle distance, called: "We have the
property ready for your inspection, sir."
Hyrcanus, readily allowing both kicker and victim to drop below
the horizon of his attention, turned away. Valdemar got the impression that
this man cared little for anyone's respect; the property, whatever that might
be, was of much greater interest.
Valdemar supposed that the interesting property ready for
inspection was the Sword of Wisdom. He stretched his neck, but couldn't quite
make out the object on the ground that Hyrcanus and the others gathered round
to look at.
Whatever it was, after a short conference, Hyrcanus was back,
looming over Valdemar.
"Fellow, they tell me that you were standing watch, sentry
duty, at the time of our arrival." The Chairman had the look of a man who
was perpetually suspicious.
"Yes, I was." Valdemar's bitterness at having failed in
that duty came through. "What of it?"
Brod, having moved into the background again, was not in sight at
the moment. It was an ordinary soldier who kicked Valdemar this time, though
Valdemar really hadn't been trying to be insolent. These people, he thought,
were really difficult to deal with.
Hyrcanus asked him impatiently: "And you were holding the
Sword called Wayfinder as you stood guard?"
The youth saw no reason not to admit that fact.
The red-faced man nodded. "No doubt it looked an excellent
weapon—and it is. But perhaps you did not understand its real value?"
"Perhaps I did not."
To Valdemar it seemed no more than a reasonable answer, but there
must have been something wrong with his tone of voice, for he was awarded
another kick. Soon his ribs were going to get sore.
"Perhaps you were not using the Sword properly? Not engaging
its full powers?"
"Perhaps I was not."
Chairman and Director turned away and walked a little distance, to
put their heads together for some more mumbling. Then the latter emerged from
the huddle to announce: "We'll question him more thoroughly later. What
about the woman?"
Soon both officials were bending over Yambu. Magical assistance
was called for, and provided. Soon the Director admitted: "She seems to
have put herself into some kind of trance. We'll soon have her out of it when
we're ready to talk."
Hyrcanus, squinting and frowning, taking a closer look at the
woman, ordered someone to bring him a better light. When a magically-enhanced
torch, so bright it almost hurt to look at it, was held over the sleeping face,
Hyrcanus said in a low voice that she reminded him of the Silver Queen, but
that seemed improbable, and in any case this woman appeared too young.
Another subordinate approached the Chairman deferentially, to
inquire of him exactly where he wanted his pavilion put up; some soldiers and a
minor magician were ready to get to work on that task now.
Hyrcanus considered, and told him. Then he and his Director
continued their discussions, with Valdemar still able to hear most of what was
said. One of the soldiers had pointed out that curiously three or four of his
comrades had been killed at some little distance from the spot where the two
prisoners were taken.
"Killed by whom?"
"That's it, sir. We don't know."
The Director of Security demanded: "Are we sure there were
four of these people on the scene before we attacked?"
"Yes sir."
"Then it is obvious that two have somehow managed to get
away. You should not have allowed that!"
The military officer's only defense was that orders had been to
make sure the Sword was captured, no matter what else happened.
The two high officials moved a little farther off. From, what
Valdemar could overhear, they were remarking how strange it seemed that the
Sword of Wisdom had not only failed to save the camp, but failed to guide its
wielder to some means of avoiding death or capture.
The Chairman was coming back. "I wonder if this could be in
fact the Lady Yambu."
Sergeant Brod, presented at last with a chance to be useful, did
not allow it to go to waste. "Sir! Master Chairman. It is in fact the lady
herself that we are looking at. I have seen her before, and I can swear to
it!"
"You? Again?" Hyrcanus, frowning, looked around at his
subordinates, appealing silently for someone to take this fellow away.
A small squad of soldiers moved to do the job; Valdemar, hearing
only a mutter and a scuffle, thought philosophically that he would not be
surprised to see Brod, back again.
"If she is Yambu," Hyrcanus was brooding to himself,
gazing once more upon that silent face, "if she is... then she at least would have
realized the value of the Sword with which her little group was
traveling."
"That is certainly the case, Your Opulence," agreed the
Director.
Then he raised his eyes to meet Valdemar's. "Well, fellow?
Who do you say she is?"
UNTIL Zoltan was sure that he and Ben had left the enemy behind,
he continued running with Woundhealer transfixing his own body, his left hand
gripping the hilt to hold the Sword in place. So far he and Ben were managing
to stay together, though this required Zoltan to slow down. The young man
calculated that Ben's presence would be a mighty advantage toward their goal of
getting Woundhealer home.
The continued presence of the Sword of Healing inside his rib cage
engendered in Zoltan a very strange sensation, neither pleasure nor pain, but
rather a sense that some tremendous experience, whether good or bad, must be
about to overwhelm him. The feeling was mentally though not physically
uncomfortable.
Both men ran on, without speaking, under the gradually
brightening sky of early morning. As soon as Zoltan could be reasonably sure
that no enemies were in close pursuit, or ahead of them, he paused and released
Woundhealer's hilt; there was no need to pull in order to extract the Blade.
Instead it slid itself smoothly and gently out of his heart and lungs, away
from his torso. Once more a sighing sound came from the Sword; then it was once
more inert.
Zoltan felt physically fine. Taking a quick inventory of his body, he could discover
no residual harm or damage at all from the several deadly blows he had recently
sustained.
His giant comrade, swaying and groaning at his side, was in
considerably worse shape, and in need of Wound-healer's immediate help.
Ben, completely out of breath, indicated with a silent gesture
that he wanted Zoltan to hand over the Sword to him. The younger man complied.
A quick application of Woundhealer abolished Ben's injuries as if
they had never been. Now the voice of the older man was clear and strong.
"Ah, that's better. Much better."
With Ben retaining the Sword of Mercy, the men moved on together,
at the best pace the older man could manage. Their running flight had already
put several low rolling, almost barren hills between them and the site where
the Blue Temple attack had fallen.
Zoltan, beginning to chafe and fret with the need to accommodate
his slower partner, now suggested: "I might take it and run on
ahead."
"No." The answer was definite, though made brief to
conserve breath.
Making himself be patient, Zoltan allowed his more experienced
companion to set their course. The sky continued brightening, but only
gradually and sullenly; more spring rain appeared to be on the way. Ben was not
heading directly toward Sarykam, but somewhat to the west, where a few trees
grew along a ravine that held a trickle of muddy water at its bottom.
Trudging toward the ravine, Ben and Zoltan made plans as best they
could.
Both were eagerly anticipating the help promised from Mark, but
neither could see any way to guess when such assistance might be expected to
arrive.
"No hope for the lady back there, or the young man either," said Ben,
pausing momentarily to look over his shoulder toward the place where their camp
had been. All was silent in that direction, but Zoltan thought he could see, beyond
a series of intervening hills, the glow of bright, unnatural lights, contending
against the slowly brightening sky of morning.
"No. It seems a miracle that we got away." Zoltan shook
his head. "They looked like Blue Temple."
Ben grunted. "So they did. That means it's probably not a
miracle. Whatever a job may be, if it's nothing to do with counting money,
they're as like as not to botch it up."
"I take it we're pushing straight on to Tasavalta."
"More or less straight. I mean to get there," Ben said grimly.
"With Woundhealer."
Daylight was coming on in earnest now. The sky continued
overcast, now and then dropping a spatter of rain, or lowering patches of
drifting fog. The fugitives welcomed this weather, certain to render more
difficult the task of any airborne searchers. "We have to assume there'll
be more reptiles." "Of course. And maybe worse than that." The
few trees along the ravine offered only scanty cover. On a sunny day the
Tasavaltans might have been forced to look for somewhere to remain hidden
during the day. Clouds, rain, and fog offered some hope, but weather was
subject to change.
Continuing their conversation as they hiked, Zoltan and Ben
discussed the question of whether or not the Blue Temple attackers would know
that they had got away. It seemed almost certain that they would. "We
hacked down a few people as we left." Zoltan nodded. "And if they
know we've got this Sword—they'll certainly be after us." "Unless
they're so distracted by having Wayfinder—
and Yambu and Valdemar, perhaps alive—that they're
not interested in us."
"Depends what they do with Wayfinder. If they're going to use
the Sword of Wisdom to hunt us down, or hunt this Sword we're carrying, we've
got no chance."
Ben grunted stoically. "All we can do is move ahead. Keep
trying."
But the day wore on, and still no pursuit appeared, in the air or
overland. Pleasantly surprised at their luck, Zoltan and Ben could only pray
that it would hold.
"They must have discovered some better use for Way-finder
than tracking us."
"Better than hunting down another Sword?—it sounds strange,
but the truth must be that they don't realize that we have Woundhealer.
Possibly they don't even know that it was in our camp."
The day passed in hiking, scanning the skies, which fortunately
remained clouded, and foraging for berries. When dusk came on, Ben changed
course, now leading the way generally north and east, in the direction from
which they could expect the approach of Prince Mark and his people.
Half an hour after the Blue Temple attack, morning was brightening
slowly and sullenly as Chairman Hyrcanus was establishing himself in an
organized field office.
In intervals between his other tasks, Hyrcanus kept coming back to
look at the supine figure of the captive woman. Each time he looked, and shook
his head, and went away again. He said: "If this is indeed the Silver
Queen, it would seem that she has somehow grown young again."
"Magic," offered the Director succinctly.
Another Blue Temple wizard, evidently some kind of specialist
brought in for a consultation, sighed uncertainly. "No mere ordinary youth-spell, I can vouch for
that." He glanced toward Valdemar, still lying under magical paralysis.
"What does her companion say?"
"He says that she might be anyone, for all he knows. We'll
conduct some serious questioning presently."
But Hyrcanus and his aides were giving the Silver Queen and
Valdemar only a small part of their attention. Much more of their time was
spent in gloating over their captured Sword, and getting the field office
organized.
A swarm of hustling soldiers heaving poles and fabric, aided by
some minor magic, had needed only a few minutes to complete the task of
erecting the Chairman's pavilion.
This large tent was put up very near the place where Valdemar
still lay, with a light rain falling on his face. From the moment when the
pavilion started to take form, he had a good view in through its open doorway.
New lights, even stranger than the magically augmented torch, were somehow
kindled inside it, to augment the morning's feeble daylight.
Valdemar kept looking toward Yambu. He could see her face rather
more clearly now, still unconscious, or submerged in some kind of
self-inflicted trance.
A bustle of blue and gold activity continued around the pavilion
and inside it. Gradually the movements became more orderly. As soon as the
work was finished, the Director ordered that the two captives be brought into
the big tent, with a view to beginning their formal questioning.
Valdemar was hauled roughly to his feet, and words muttered over
him, giving him movement in his legs, and some degree of control. Then he was
marched in through the fabric doorway. Chairman Hyrcanus himself, red-faced and
puffing as if the labor of erecting the tent had fallen to him personally,
still garbed in heavy winter garments despite the relative warmth of spring,
was seated
behind a folding table near the center of the pavilion, still grumbling in an
almost despairing tone about the sacrifices he had had to make to venture
personally into the field on this operation so vital for the Blue Temple's
future.
The Director, seated at the Chairman's side, tried to soothe him
with expressions of sympathy.
Standing before the central table, Valdemar heard once more,
somewhere behind him, the voice of Sergeant Brod. Turning his head, he saw that
the Sarge had reappeared, evidently still trying to make himself useful to the
Chairman and his people. But Brod had been forced to remain outside the tent.
Hyrcanus himself was wasting no time, but not hurrying
particularly either, shuffling papers about in front of him, methodically
getting ready to undertake, in his own good time, whatever business might be
required.
Behind the Chairman, piled inconspicuously in the shadows toward
the rear of the tent, Valdemar could see what appeared to be certain metal
tools, looking too complicated to be simple weapons. Vaguely he wondered what
they were.
The Chairman cleared his throat. He made an announcement,
something to the effect that this session was going to be only preliminary.
Looking sternly at his clerks, seated at another table along one
wall, he added: "The fact that we must conduct, in the field, operations
more properly performed at headquarters, is no excuse for inefficiency.
Everything must be done in a businesslike fashion."
Yambu, having somehow been restored to at least partial
consciousness, was now being brought into the pavilion too, and made to stand
beside Valdemar. They exchanged looks; neither said anything. Valdemar thought
that probably there were no useful words to be said at the moment.
*
* *
Rain and wind surged against the blue and gold tent, as if in a
fruitless endeavor to get at the papers inside.
Several folding chairs, enough—as Valdemar thought he heard
someone remark—for the absolute necessary minimum of meetings, were disposed
about within the tent. Two or three of the strange Old World lights had been
placed on the tables, and another mounted on a folding metal stand. Valdemar
got the impression that there was some kind of heating device as well, Old
World or magical, giving off a gentle invisible glow of warmth around the
Chairman's feet.
Hyrcanus, mumbling almost inaudibly to himself, was busily
extracting more sheaves of paperwork from a dispatch case of dull leather, and
laying the stuff out upon his table under the bright, efficient light.
Valdemar, watching, assumed that this array of written records must be intended
to serve some magical purpose. He could not picture any mundane necessity for
it.
At a nod from the Chairman, one of his subordinates gave the order
for the prisoners to be moved, one at a time, somewhat closer to the central
table.
Before getting down to serious questioning, the Chairman, acting
in the tradition of his organization, saw to it that his captives' names and
descriptions were noted down, and that they were methodically robbed. Hands
went dipping into Valdemar's pockets, and his clothing was patted and probed,
by means both physical and magical.
Valdemar realized to his surprise that these people were more
concerned with him than with the Silver Queen. The only reason he could imagine
for this was that he had happened to be holding the Sword when they arrived.
An exact inventory was taken of all valuables confiscated from the two
prisoners. Actually these were very few, and of disappointingly little value.
Valdemar noted that the high officials of the Temple took very
seriously this business of accounting for items of trivial financial value.
"Money?"
"Practically none, sir." But the clerk, under the Chairman's
cold stare, went on to itemize the few small coins which had been taken from
Valdemar and Yambu. This painstaking listing, accomplished in the meticulous
Blue Temple fashion, occupied what seemed to Valdemar an inordinate amount of
time.
Though Valdemar had never before had any direct dealings with the
Blue Temple, he like everyone else had heard a thousand stories exemplifying
its legendary greed and stinginess. While the young man had no liking for the
picture painted by those stories, the tales inspired in him not terror so much
as contempt and wariness. He was now waiting impatiently for a chance to argue
that he should be considered a non-combatant here and allowed to go on about
his business.
But the Chairman was in no hurry, nor were his clerks, who
evidently understood exactly the attitude toward work that was required of
them. While Hyrcanus sat shuffling and rearranging his papers at one folding
table they were busy writing and calculating at another. Among their other
tasks, Valdemar gathered as he listened to their clerkly murmurs, was that of
keeping a precise expense account—how much was this mission costing the
corporation?
In the background, two or three meters behind and above the
droning clerks, a small window high in the rear wall of the pavilion afforded
Valdemar an occasional sight of one of the griffins, or perhaps two—he could
not be sure whether it was really the same huge, nightmarish head and neck that
now and then loomed up in the morning's gloom, as if the beast were curious about what was
happening inside the tent. The griffin, or griffins, had evidently been
tethered close behind the pavilion.
The griffin or griffins, Valdemar realized at a second look, were
eating something out there. Lion-jaws dripped with a dark liquid in the
uncertain, cloudy light. Suddenly he had the horrible feeling that the
creatures were tearing some animal—or human—body to pieces for a snack.
The Chairman coughed drily. But then, just when Valdemar thought
Hyrcanus might at last be ready to get down to business, the Chairman delayed
again, turning to his Director of Security to lament the cost to the Temple in
time and money of this journey. He had spent some days in getting here,
traveling from the unnamed city of his headquarters, and he considered the
expense of shipping his necessary equipment to have been almost ruinous.
Talking to his Director of Headquarters Security, upon whose bald
head the Old World light gleamed brightly—and who, here in the bright light,
looked even older than he had outside—now and then looking up to glare at his new
prisoner or prisoners as if he considered them to blame—the Chairman deigned to
give them all several reasons why he had felt it necessary to take charge
personally of this expedition:
"One, because I feared that Master Wood, on once getting the
Sword of Wisdom into his hands, would never relinquish it." Hyrcanus
paused thoughtfully. "Of course I suppose Woundhealer is one Sword Wood
might be induced to give up—for a price."
The Director, to no one's surprise, expressed agreement.
Now a long strongbox was carried into the tent by a couple of
soldiers in blue and gold, who handled the prize warily. After depositing the
strongbox at the Chairman's feet, they opened it, lifted out the Sword of Wisdom, and
placed it carefully in front of Hyrcanus upon the table, after a blue satin
cloth had been meticulously folded and positioned for a cushion.
One of the clerks, moving fussily and nervously, slightly adjusted
the Old World lights to provide Hyrcanus with the best illumination.
Only at this point was Valdemar struck by the conspicuous absence
of the Sword of Mercy. Since he had been taken prisoner, no one in his hearing
had even mentioned Woundhealer—that could only mean, he thought, that either
Ben or Zoltan had managed to get away with the Sword of Healing.
At this thought, Valdemar shot the Lady Yambu a sharp glance. And
she, as if she somehow knew just what idea had just occurred to him, responded
with a glance urging caution.
Yes, Valdemar thought, it must be true. Hyrcanus and his people
gave no indication of realizing how close they had come to capturing the Sword
of Healing. Had they been aware of how narrowly that prize had just escaped
them, they would already have launched an intensive search for it, and not be
dawdling through this leisurely preparation for an interrogation.
Of course Wayfinder by itself was treasure indeed. Treasure
enough, as Valdemar was beginning to realize, to dazzle at least slightly even
the Chairman of the Blue Temple himself. When the soldiers put the Sword of
Wisdom down in front of Hyrcanus, his eyes came alight. He touched the black
hilt with a tentative forefinger, then stroked it greedily.
Confronted with the reality of Wayfinder, Chairman and Director
both appeared to speedily lose interest in their prisoners. Evidently any
serious questioning would be allowed to wait.
The Director of Security rubbed his bald head nervously as he stared at the
Sword. He said: "Sir, we must get this property to a place of safety as
soon as possible."
"Of course." Hyrcanus leaned forward on the table.
"But surely we would be at fault, derelict in our duty to the Temple
Stockholders, if we did not find one other duty even more pressing, and perform
that one first?"
"Sir?"
"We must delay carrying this treasure away to safety, just
long enough to make our first use of it."
The Director hesitated. "May I ask what use Your Opulence has
in mind?"
"You may ask. Though I suppose it should be obvious."
The Chairman, his face displaying a look of satisfaction, paused as if for
emphasis. "I intend to require this Sword to indicate to us the location
of the greatest treasure in the world."
For a moment there was silence in the pavilion.
Valdemar was suddenly struck by what he considered an ominous
indication. Neither Chairman nor Director was displaying the least concern
about the fact that their prisoners were listening to this discussion. It was,
the young man thought, as if the Blue Temple officials considered their
captives already dead.
At last Hyrcanus, standing up, moving carefully, drew Wayfinder
from its sheath. The blade caught bright gleams from the Old World lights as
the Chairman gripped the hilt in his two soft hands, making the Sword's powers
for the moment his own.
"Now, how shall I phrase this request exactly?" This
preliminary question seemed to be addressed more to himself than to anyone
else, or to the Sword itself.
The worried Director answered with a murmured suggestion that the
first care be for safety.
But Hyrcanus stubbornly shook his head. "We have," he
said, "had direct assurances regarding our present security from our cavalry
commander, and also from your powers, magician. True?"
"True, Your Opulence, but—"
"Tell me, do you believe that our encampment here is now
secure, or is it not?"
"At the moment, sir, it is secure enough," the other
murmured unhappily.
"Then there you are. Would breaking camp right now make the
Sword any safer? Besides, our men and beasts are tired. They are all in need of
rest before we undertake another march."
"True enough, Your Opulence."
"While they rest, we at the executive level can best make use
of our time by pursuing our further duties to the stockholders."
Now for the first time Hyrcanus addressed the Sword directly. In
his dry voice he phrased a simple demand: "Where is the greatest treasure
in the world?"
Valdemar, watching with a dozen others, thought that the Sword did
not react; or it reacted only slightly, and in an uncertain way.
"What in the world now?" the Chairman demanded, suddenly
querulous. Obviously he had been expecting a more dramatic response of some
kind. Letting the Blade rest on the table, he rubbed his left hand, the one
free of the Sword's hilt, over his bald head.
After a little silence, the Director cleared his throat. "Do
you think, Chairman, there might possibly have been some ambiguity in your
phrasing of the question?"
"Ambiguity? You mean, some uncertainty as to which of the
world's treasures is actually the greatest? Ah, the question of determining the
best measure of determined value. Authorities do disagree on that, it's
true." Hyrcanus cleared his throat again. "Perhaps I should rephrase
my inquiry."
Valdemar hoped that if Hyrcanus did receive from the
Sword a plain unequivocal answer to any of his urgent questions
regarding treasure, the Chairman would not feel it necessary to break camp at
once, tired men and beasts or not, and follow the direction indicated.
Because what might he do with his prisoners then?
Hyrcanus was now interrupting himself to raise another point:
"I wonder whether we ought not to approach Prince Mark—or any successful
monarch might do, I suppose—with the idea of making some kind of trade for this
lovely piece of magic, or offering it for sale—after, of course, we have used
it to the best advantage for the Temple."
"Prince Mark," mused the Director, in a non-committal
tone.
"I am assuming Mark can raise sufficient treasure to make
such a purchase—indeed such a powerful Prince ought to be able to do so."
A brief debate on this point followed, between Hyrcanus and his
Director of Security. Finally the latter brought the discussion back to
considerations of safety.
Valdemar, listening attentively, gathered that neither the Chairman
nor the Director believed Mark had been able to retain any appreciable amount
of booty from the fabulous, infamous Great Raid. Both officials seemed to be
saying that comparatively little Blue Temple wealth had actually been lost on
that occasion.
But neither of the Blue Temple leaders seemed able to believe that
Mark had not spent his years in power in Tasavalta amassing more wealth for
himself.
Eventually they came back to the business at hand— getting the
best possible quick advantage from Wayfinder.
"The more I think about it, Director, the more it seems to me
that you are right. To assure that we obtain an unequivocal, useful answer, we
must be clear in our own minds about the nature of the specific treasure we are
seeking." Hyrcanus toyed meditatively with the Sword.
The Director said: "I should think, Your Opulence, that the
most likely site for a truly unsurpassable treasure might well be in one of the
Blue Temple's own vaults."
"What do you say?"
"I wonder, sir, if we will know whether this Sword is
pointing at our own gold. Do you, personally, know the locations, and certified
values, of each and every one of our own hoards? Their bearings from this
spot?"
Hyrcanus hesitated fractionally before insisting: "Of course
I do! Don't you?"
"Of course—sir."
Valdemar, listening, marveled at the indications suggesting that
neither of these men was really sure of the matter.
The young man could see the fires of cupidity beginning to burn
out of control in the eyes of the new masters of the Sword of Wisdom, as they
huddled close over their prize. It looked as if the Director was beginning to
be won over from his concerns of safety by his master's all-powerful greed.
They were both staring at Wayfinder obsessively now. Perhaps, Valdemar thought,
they were coming to terms with the condition all users of this weapon had to
face—that the so-called Sword of Wisdom would never tell anyone Why, or What,
or How, or When—or Whether—regarding any thing—but only, with seeming
infallibility, exactly Where.
Hyrcanus murmured: "You are right. If our own treasure be
not the greatest—then whose?"
Hyrcanus's chief aide said to him: "Possibly some Old World
trove that for all our searching we have never been able to discover?"
"Possibly." The Chairman sank back into his chair.
"Or possibly it is some property of the Emperor's, to which access is restricted
by some tremendous enchantment?"
The Director, who had risen when his leader did, was not really
listening. Instead he now waved his arms in the excitement of an inspiration of
his own. "Wait! I have it! The Sword's answer to your original question
was hard to interpret, ambiguous, for a very good reason—because it was
self-referential!"
"Aha!"
"Yes, Your Opulence, the Swords themselves are the world's
greatest treasure. And this Sword in particular must be valued above all the
others—Way finder itself may be—no, must be—the greatest treasure in the world!
And why? Because it is the key to all the rest!"
"Ahh." Hyrcanus, his eyes suddenly gone wide, let out a
breath of satisfaction.
He had no need to ponder the Director's claim for very long before
giving it his approval. "This very weapon before us, my good Director.
Yes, what could be more valuable? I will see to it that you receive a bonus of
shares. Perhaps even—a seat on the Board."
Valdemar was thinking that it made sense. Very possibly they were
right—from their point of view the Sword of Wisdom had a transcendent value,
because it was capable of leading them to all the other Swords, or to any other
treasure that they cared to specify.
"Having made that identification," the Director remarked,
"are we any further in deciding how best to use our greatest
treasure?"
"I think," said the Chairman, "that we must be somewhat
more specific, and somewhat more modest, in our next inquiry."
"Indeed. Yes."
"Very well then." He addressed Wayfinder again.
"Sword, I adjure you to show us ... to show me ... the way to the
Emperor's most magnificent treasure." Hyrcanus hesitated, then gave a little nod of
satisfaction and plunged on. "I mean, to that thing, or collection of
things, that I would consider most magnificent were I to see them all."
Valdemar, and Yambu standing beside him, watched and listened, the
young man at least hardly daring to breathe. But he was somewhat puzzled. The
Emperor? The name evoked only the vague image of a hapless clown, of a
legendary figure out of childhood fables, who, even if he really lived, would
be far less real and less important than any of the now-vanished gods.
Wayfinder twitched visibly in the Chairman's hands, but that was
all. Evidently it was still giving only an ambiguous indication at best.
Hyrcanus evidently found this behavior unacceptable. "Surely
you can respond more definitely, Sword. If I said I wanted to find the Emperor,
how would you answer me?"
This question was so obviously hypothetical that Hyrcanus
scarcely paused before recasting it, with firm Blue Temple legalism.
"Sword, I bid you guide me to meet the Emperor."
But again the Sword only demonstrated uncertainty.
The Chairman set his treasure gently down upon the table, and
drummed his fingers next to it. "Well, Director, how are we to interpret
this? That we are only to wait here, to meet the Emperor? That does not seem to
make much sense—unless he is coming to call upon us." He added drily:
"An unprecedented event, surely."
"I agree, Your Opulence."
In the following silence, Yambu's voice sounded quite
unexpectedly, so that everyone turned to look at her. "Perhaps the Emperor
is on his way here, to meet you." Her face wore what Valdemar thought an
odd expression, even considering her situation.
Her statement was received with mixed reactions by the men in power. These
were knowledgeable, worldly leaders. They were constitutionally wary of the
unknown in all its aspects, and whatever knowledge they possessed about the
Great Clown, beyond what ordinary people knew, they did not particularly fear
him.
Hyrcanus looked with interest at Yambu. "You know him,
then?"
"I am indeed the Silver Queen. I suppose I know him if anyone
does. I have borne his child."
"If he is coming here now," said the elderly Director
after a time, "do you suppose he will be bringing his greatest treasure
with him?"
The Silver Queen said, "I do not know."
Hyrcanus, letting Wayfinder lie on the table but rubbing the hilt
as if for luck, stood up, pushing back his chair as if he wished to stretch.
He raised his eyes to find his male prisoner watching him
intently. "Well, fellow? Had you any experience similar to this when
Wayfinder was yours?"
Valdemar nodded slowly. "I admit it puzzled me a time or two.
If that is what you mean."
No one asked him to elaborate, and he did not try.
Standing awkwardly beside him, Yambu was gradually growing more
perturbed, as if she found the prospect of an Imperial visit somehow
unsettling.
Time passed, very slowly in Valdemar's perception. Outside the
pavilion, the Blue Temple's military people were stolidly going about their
routine business of guard duty and camp making. Nothing of consequence seemed
to be happening.
Not that the two high officials were going to be content simply to
wait for the Emperor. No, people kept coming to the door of their tent with
practical questions, matters that required answers. The commander of the
cavalry, still awake himself though (as Valdemar thought) most of his troops—who had
evidently ridden all night—were probably asleep, came in respectfully asking to
be informed: Would they be breaking camp first thing the next morning? Would
they spend the remainder of the day and night interrogating their fresh-caught
prisoners?
Hyrcanus had excused himself, Valdemar supposed probably for a
latrine break, and the question was left to his second-in-command to answer.
"Oh, I doubt that." The Director, stretching, allowed
himself a smothered yawn. "You might as well haul that stuff away and pack
it up again." He gestured toward the rear of the tent; and only now did
Valdemar realize what the piled instruments of torture were, as a pair of
soldiers packed them up again, and bore them out.
When the Chairman returned, a few minutes later, rubbing his hands
together, the Director questioned him about the prisoners too: Was there really
any point in dragging the wretches all the way back to headquarters?
"Perhaps, perhaps not. How can we know at this stage? Let us
see if my question brings any result within the next few hours."
The morning hours dragged on. Hyrcanus and his Director were, as
they thought, being their usual practical, businesslike selves when the clouded
sky outside the tent seemed to split in half, and the gold and blue pavilion
was torn away from above their heads.
Valdemar closed his eyes and yelled, momentarily certain that the
last instant of his life had come.
IT was still morning, on that cloudy, rainy day, when the young
woman commonly known as Tigris, accompanied by ferocious (though not very
numerous) supporting forces—including one demon of more than ordinary power—and
riding her own griffin, came crashing in with a murderous assault upon the
newly established Blue Temple camp.
The Blue Temple griffins, being the cowardly creatures that they
were, rose into the air, breaking their tethers, and took flight immediately.
At the moment of the attack, Hyrcanus's people were doing their best to be
alert, but they were simply overmatched, and the attack was a complete success.
Valdemar had never seen Tigris before, nor had he any means of
identifying any of Wood's other people or creatures. The result was that while
the fighting raged around him the young man had not the faintest idea of the
true nature of this fresh batch of invaders.
On finding himself unhurt after the first few moments of the
attack, Valdemar began to hope that he might after all be able to survive. By
this time a heartening explanation had suggested itself, namely that these conquerors
were the friendly Tasavaltans of whom he had
heard so much from his traveling companions;
Valdemar's spirits rose sharply with the prospect.
Had the youth been aware that a demon was among the attacking
force, this would have dashed his risen hopes. But although the proximity of
the foul thing soon began to make him physically ill, the young man was unable
to either see or identify the source of his symptoms.
Valdemar's companion in captivity, the Silver Queen, was
considerably more experienced and knowledgeable. Quickly recognizing the nature
of the latest onslaught, Yambu felt her heart sink. Almost instantly she was
able to recognize Tigris, and the presence of a demon as well.
The Silver Queen would have made some effort to enlighten her
fellow prisoner, but she could neither talk to him effectively nor help him at
the moment.
As had been the case in the previous assault, the struggle in
magical and physical terms was intense but brief. Too late, one after another,
the pair of high Blue Temple officials tried to grab up the Sword of Wisdom.
But the neat tables full of paperwork had already been knocked over, and the
top of the pavilion ripped away before either of the Executives could get his
hands on Way-finder. The Sword fell to the ground, and was covered in folds of
collapsing fabric. The clerks ran in panic, or writhed in pain as enemy weapons
struck them down.
At this point the magical bonds constricting Valdemar's movements
began to slacken, and the youth enjoyed a few moments' hope that he would be
able to escape. As he looked, Hyrcanus himself was slain. Valdemar, watching,
could not have named the cause of death; one moment the Chairman was grimacing
in alarm, and the next he was slumping inertly to the earth.
A moment later Valdemar himself was buried under the folds of
collapsed fabric. Struggling ineffectually, the youth could tell by the sounds reaching his
ears that more swordfighting was taking place. He could see nothing of the
conflict.
With some strength and feeling coming back into his tingling
limbs, Valdemar struggled against the enveloping folds that were keeping him a
prisoner. He could only hope that Yambu, luckier or more skillful in the arts
of magic, or perhaps both, might be able to get free in the confusion.
During the few moments in which the Director and the Blue Temple
troops continued to make a fight of it, all local Blue Temple spells were
shattered; and Yambu, given such an opportunity, did what she could to make the
best of it.
Valdemar at last managed to crawl partially out from under the
folds of the collapsed pavilion.
Before him the latest attackers, as they came slicing their way
in, led by a woman, concentrated their efforts on getting control of the Sword
of Wisdom.
And these attackers, in blue and silver livery, were ruthlessly
successful.
In a few minutes at the most, the female leader and their forces
had stunned, scattered, or killed all Blue Temple opposition. The warrior
woman had fairly got Wayfinder into her pretty white little hands.
At the last moment, the Director of Security, emerging from some
obscure hiding place, attempted to escape. Valdemar saw him first, scuttling on
all fours, then slowly trying to crawl away, and finally trying to play
dead—but he was discovered and pounced on, captured alive.
And what of the Silver Queen? Valdemar, looking in all directions,
realized with a faint dawning of hope that he could no longer see Yambu
anywhere.
The young woman who had led the attack took a moment to examine
the Chairman's body.
She then complained to some of her subordinates; evidently she
was dismayed to find this eminent person dead.
Her anger flared at those who had killed him, and Valdemar thought
she would have been angrier had she not been distracted by the discovery of
Wayfinder.
Someone asked her whether the body of such a leader could be put
to any use magically. No, she said that it was worthless—perhaps she did not
want to divert her time and effort from a greater opportunity. "Might as
well feed him to my griffin."
And now Tigris, annoyed at having been forced to waste even a few
moments on other problems, was picking up Wayfinder, claiming the great Sword
for herself.
She looked at the Sword of Wisdom with great satisfaction, and,
thought Valdemar, considerable surprise. It seemed to him as if this lady
warrior had not been expecting this Sword at all. Again he wondered about
Zoltan and Ben, and prayed to Ardneh that one of them at least might be able to
keep Woundhealer safely away.
The Director, somewhat dazed, was being brought before his
conqueror. He managed a slight bow. "Lady Tigris," was all he said.
She was still absorbed in the contemplation of her new treasure.
The prisoner being held before her would have fallen had not the grips on his
arms held him up. Now he looked about him as if uncertain of where he was.
At last giving him some attention, Tigris remarked: "You're
not looking well, my friend."
The Director only stared at her wanly.
She added, speculatively: "You know, sometimes people never
completely get over the kind of treatment that you received from my Master in
your Temple."
The elderly man smiled, as if that idea pleased him.
The smile, in the circumstances, made him look like the village
idiot.
But now Valdemar's opportunity of leisurely observation was
coming to a sudden end. A soldier had discovered him, and in moments he had
been disentangled from the wreckage of the pavilion. Soldiers in mixed dress,
looking like a gang of peasants, were dragging him before the Lady Tigris.
Gesturing for the Director to be taken away, she frowned at
Valdemar. Her free hand moved in a subtle gesture, and her blue eyes narrowed
as she stared at the gigantic young man.
"You are not Blue Temple," Tigris said. It was not a
question.
"No ma'am. I was their prisoner."
Tigris adjusted the swordbelt she had so recently fastened around
her slender waist. Meanwhile her gaze at Valdemar did not waver in its
intensity.
"I more or less expected to take a few prisoners," she
murmured to herself. "One can always find good use for prisoners. But
..."
She raised the Sword she was still holding in her right hand, so
that for a moment Valdemar thought she was going to kill him right away with
Wayfinder.
Then, to his immeasurable relief, he realized that she was only
going to ask the Sword a question.
"Sword," she whispered again, "where am I to turn
to win—that which I most desire?"
Valdemar at the moment was physically closer to the enchantress
than any other person. No one else, perhaps, except the stolid soldiers who
were holding his arms, was near enough to have heard the question. No one else,
perhaps, observed the look of sheer surprise in her eyes when Wayfinder, in
response, swung up in the enchantress's grip to point directly at Valdemar.
He was at least as astonished as the young woman holding the Sword
of Wisdom.
"This one?" she muttered, in slightly louder tones.
"And what am I supposed to do with him—sacrifice him?"
But that kind of question, as the questioner herself appeared to
understand full well, was not the kind to which Wayfinder could be expected to
reply.
Meanwhile other matters began intruding, frustrating her evident
wish to concentrate on the Sword. The blue and gold pavilion had been
thoroughly wrecked in the skirmishing, and one of the young woman's aides was
wondering what to do about it. She commanded him to see that the wreckage was
got out of the way and searched for whatever of value it might contain.
"And are we to camp here, Lady Tigris?" the soldier
asked.
The lady, seemingly indifferent to the rain, which darkened and
plastered her blond hair, muttered some kind of an answer that Valdemar did not
really hear.
In Valdemar's eyes the young woman's face was so hard and ruthless
that he felt morally certain she could not really be as young as she appeared.
Now she came a few steps closer, pointing Wayfinder deliberately
at his midsection, so that momentarily he once more felt in danger of being
skewered. From the steady way she held the heavy Sword, it was apparent that
her slender wrists must be stronger than they looked.
Fiercely she demanded of Valdemar: "You . . . very well, what
is important about you? There must be something. What are you good for, what
use am I to make of you?"
The only response that came to the lips of the dazed youth was:
"Well, you are certainly not the Emperor."
One of the lady's eyebrows rose. "I should hope not."
It was a wary, calculating answer. "Were you expecting
him?"
She sounded as if she thought the Emperor's arrival not a totally
ridiculous idea. Why, Valdemar wondered, were all these knowledgeable people
apparently taking the Great Clown so seriously?
To his captor he replied: "Someone just moments ago—I mean
the Chairman—was asking that Sword about the location of the Emperor's
treasure."
"I see." Again what he said was being taken seriously.
Meanwhile, Tigris was evaluating her young captive as impressively
arrogant. At first glance he was only a peasant, but of course there had to be
something special about him, for the Sword of Wisdom to pick him out as her
ticket to freedom.
He was continuing to stare at her in what she considered to be a
very insolent way—allowing for the fact that men did tend to stare at her. The
look had some fear in it, as might be expected of anyone but a madman in his
situation. But it contained a measure of haughty defiance too.
Just as Tigris was about to speak again, a small bird, unperturbed
by drizzling rain and sullen cloud, began singing somewhere nearby. Her
reaction, the way she turned to get a look at the bird, made Valdemar turn his
head too. Yes, there was the little feathered thing, looking quite ordinary,
perched in the branches of a tree not far from the destroyed pavilion.
The diminutive songster, seemingly indifferent to the affairs of
humans and the weapons of the gods, produced a few more notes, then flew away,
as if suddenly frightened by something beyond the range of Valdemar's senses.
Tigris turned her attention to her prisoner again. Valdemar felt a
sudden return of the physical sickness. Still he was unable to assign a cause.
The lovely young woman regarded him in silence a little longer.
Then she said: "I am still trying to fathom why the Sword of Wisdom should
have pointed you out to me. Have you any idea why?"
Before Valdemar could attempt a reply, one of the lady's human
subordinates came up to request orders, interrupting her train of thought.
Turning aside, she commanded this man to dispatch a message to Master Wood.
"Inform the Master that we have had great success."
"Shall I tell him, my lady, that the Sword we have taken here
is not the one we were expecting to find?"
"No, fool! The Master will know of that already. Use just the
words I have just spoken: 'great success.' Nothing more and nothing
less."
"Yes, my lady." The soldier bowed himself away.
Tigris returned her full attention to Valdemar.
"Where is the Sword of Healing?" she demanded abruptly.
"I don't know."
Tigris stared at him. If she was really determined to find
Woundhealer, he thought, all she had to do was put to work the Sword she had
just captured. But he was sure that she had had some other goal in mind when
she put her first question to Wayfinder. And she had been quite as surprised as
he was at Wayfinder's answer.
In another moment Tigris, still with the Sword of Wisdom in hand,
was giving orders that the camp be guarded well. She herself, she proclaimed to
her subordinates, was about to go apart from them, because she needed solitude
to work a certain special spell.
With that accomplished, a new word and a gesture from the
sorceress sufficed to grant Valdemar another degree of freedom from the magical
restrictions on his movement. Suddenly he felt he could walk normally; he
wondered what would happen should he attempt to run.
Brusquely ordering him to follow, her eyes on Way-finder, which
she held in front of her, Tigris led the way out of what had been the Blue
Temple camp.
Stiffly Valdemar followed. His legs still moved only slowly, his
powerful arms hung almost useless at his sides. Maybe, he thought, he could use
both arms and legs effectively if he really tried. But probably that thought
was delusion. The confident small woman who had just turned her back on him did
not seem to be worried about anything that he might do.
She continued to carry the Sword extended horizontally ahead of
her, and he thought she was muttering to it again, though he could not make out
her words. As if she might be asking Wayfinder for the best place to take
Valdemar—for what purpose? He supposed that he was going to find out soon.
As they paced on across the sandy wasteland, Lady Tigris still in
the lead, the rain continued, a sullen dripping from a lowering, overcast sky.
The birds were silent now, or absent, having taken flight from the ominous
presence of the demon.
This stalwart, healthy-looking youth, as far as Tigris could tell,
was a damned unlikely candidate to be of any magical or political prowess or
importance whatsoever.
Physically, of course, he was impressive. It occurred to her to
wonder whether he might have been someone's personal bodyguard. Not Hyrcanus's
or the Director's, because he was not Blue Temple. But then who . . . ?
"Who are you, fellow?" she demanded, turning to stare at
him again, but almost as if asking the question of herself.
He shook his shaggy head, perhaps to rid his eyes of rain. Looking
down at her from his great height, he answered simply: "My name is
Valdemar, lady."
"That tells me almost nothing."
"I am a grower of vines and grapes."
For a moment Tigris regarded this reply as brave mockery indeed,
and was on the brink of administering punishment. Then, reconsidering the tone
of the answer, she came to the belief that it had been sincere.
She shook her own wet blond curls, impatient but wary, pondering,
ready to kill or to bless, as might be required. "I can smell some kind of
magic about you, I believe . . . though not, I think, any impressive power of
your own. What have you to do with the Swords?"
Again the towering youth shook his head. "Nothing at all.
Except that the one you now hold, lady, was once given to me."
That surprised her. "Given to you? Why?"
The young giant sighed. "I wish someone could tell me
why."
"Who gave it?"
"I don't know that either."
Tigris made a disgusted sound. "I fear that getting at the
truth about you is going to take time, and my time just now is in extremely
short supply. If I thought you were being willfully stubborn . . . but of
course that may not be the case at all. You may in fact know nothing, and still
be vitally important—somehow."
When Valdemar's feet slowed, and his shoulders moved as if he
wanted to wave his arms and argue, Tigris with a gesture of her own increased
the paralytic restriction on the movement of his arms. "Keep moving, and
be quiet!"
Then she once more consulted the Sword, murmuring: "Guide us
to the safest place within a hundred meters."
Following Wayfinder's indication, she continued to march her
prisoner quickly along until after another forty meters or so they reached a
place where the Sword indicated that they should stop.
Here Valdemar thought at first that the two of them were now entirely alone.
But when he looked and listened carefully, calling into play such sense of
magic as he did possess, he became aware of a faint disturbance in the air,
just at the limit of his perception. They were in fact being attended by certain
immaterial powers, of which his human captor evidently was well aware.
And in another moment these magical attendants were gone,
dismissed by a wave of a small white hand.
Their mistress looked steadily at Valdemar. "When Hyrcanus
had this Sword," she asked, "what question or questions did he put to
it?"
"As I have already mentioned, lady, he spoke chiefly of the
Emperor, and the Emperor's treasure. Why the Chairman of the Blue Temple should
do that I do not know—I have always thought that the Emperor, if he really
existed, was no more than a clown."
The lady was not interested in Valdemar's opinions. "And what
exactly did Hyrcanus ask of this Sword?"
"I don't remember the exact words. He wanted to be shown the
way to the Emperor's greatest treasure."
"And what answer was he given?"
"Nothing very definite. The Chairman discussed this with his
colleague—the man you were just talking to back there—and they thought the
ambiguity might mean the Emperor was actually approaching. But . . . you
arrived instead."
The red lips smiled faintly. "Perhaps the real answer was
that the Great Clown has no treasure." The smile vanished. "But you
and I, grape-grower, we have no time to worry about that now."
"What are we to worry about instead?"
Tigris did not reply.
Her one overriding worry was Wood, escape from whose domination
was the single thing in the world which she most desired. Now she caught
herself instinctively looking over her shoulder. A useless gesture, of course, and she was
irritated to catch herself doing it more than once.
Valdemar took note of this quirk of behavior, and of the
expression on the young woman's face when she looked back toward the encampment
where her troops were busy with the tasks she had assigned them. He wondered
silently who or what it was that this mighty sorceress feared so much.
He asked: "You are very powerful in magic. Also you have just
won a victory, and captured one of the gods' own weapons, which you now hold in
your hands. What are you afraid of?"
She raised the Sword a little, as if she wanted to pretend that
she would strike him with it. "Yes, this is indeed one of the gods' own
weapons—but remember that the gods are dead. Or did you know that,
grape-grower?"
"I think the gods are not all dead, my lady. I still pray to
Ardneh. Ardneh of the White Temple, who never allowed himself to be caught up
with the other deities in their games—"
"Ah yes—well, grape-grower, it may surprise you, but I could
wish sometimes that Ardneh still lived, and still ruled the world—not that I
believe he ever really did."
"Why should such a wish surprise me? I could share it. I was
once," continued Valdemar, not really knowing why he chose this moment for
his revelation, "a novice monk in a White Temple."
"So? And did those fat Brothers in their Temple warn you,
when you abandoned safety for the great world, that you should choose to stay
instead?"
Without waiting for an answer, Tigris once more raised the Sword
of Wisdom.
Careless of the fact that Valdemar watched and listened, she
couched her next question in clear terms: "Hear me, Sword! Show me the way
to gain freedom from the one I fear above all others! I do not mean my own death; that road to
freedom I could find without your help. I want a long life, in safety from any
harm that he may try to do to me."
And again Wayfinder pointed, immediately and steadily, straight
at Valdemar.
"Just who," he asked the enchantress, "is this one
you fear above all others?"
She ignored him. She gave the impression of a woman fighting back
panic, trying to remain patient. There was a faint tremor in her voice.
"Very well, Sword. I now have firmly under my control this great clod of
farmyard mud that you keep pointing at. You are able to perceive that, I
suppose? Well, what do you expect me to do with him next? Sacrifice him, eat
him alive, lie with him? You will have to give me some further sign."
The Sword, of course, was not to be commanded thus, and it said
nothing in reply. It still pointed where it had been pointing—straight at
Valdemar—and that was all.
Valdemar cleared his throat. "I have noticed, that this
Sword's way of conveying meaning can sometimes be rather hard to
interpret." Though his voice was calm enough, he could feel how his ears
had reddened, oh so foolishly, with the echoing in them of those three words:
Lie with him. Odd, that now, with his very life at stake, he should be so
affected by that suggestion.
Tigris did not notice Valdemar's reaction. She cared nothing for
her captive's ears, or for his whole head, come to that. Her trained senses,
contemplating the Sword whose hilt she gripped so hard in both her hands, could
perceive the intricate knots of magic interpenetrating the hard steel, strands
invisible to ordinary vision, stretching forth and fading away in all
directions, becoming lost in bewildering complexities of power. . . . Even
she, long accustomed to the tremendous capabilities of Wood, was awfully
impressed by this, forced to an attitude that had in it much of reverence.
And this enigmatic Sword, each time she questioned it, only kept
reinforcing the importance of her captive, this otherwise inconsequential youth
who called himself Valdemar.
Letting Wayfinder's point sag to the ground, looking keenly at the
bold and ignorant fellow, Tigris was totally convinced that there must be
something more to him than he admitted. Whether he himself realized what his
peculiarity was or not.
Haughtily she insisted: "Who are you, fellow? What are you
holding back? I must somehow determine your importance to me."
The giant shrugged. "I have told you my name, and who I am.
Tell me who you are. Perhaps a meaningful connection can be established. Maybe
I have heard of you."
"You have a kind of serene insolence about you, unusual in a
peasant. Very well. My name is Tigris."
That much he had already heard. He blinked rain from his eyes.
"The name means nothing to me. I don't suppose you are from
Tasavalta?"
"I am not—are you?"
"No, I have never been near the place."
"And have you," Tigris asked her captive, "any connection
with Prince Mark of that land?"
Valdemar answered as usual with the truth: no, he had never seen
Prince Mark, and knew very little about him. He volunteered no information
about having made contact recently with Prince Mark's friends.
Tigris next asked him if he knew anything of a magician called
Wood. "He has other names as well."
"I have heard," said Valdemar, "that that one is a
powerful and evil man."
Tigris muttered under her breath: "This is getting me nowhere." She tried
another tack in her interrogation. "When I arrived, you were a prisoner of
the Blue Temple."
"Yes ma'am, I certainly did spend an uncomfortable hour or
two in that condition. It seemed like days. I thank you for putting an end to
that. I believe they would have killed me."
"How polite he is. That's good. Yes, certainly the late
Hyrcanus and his associates would have killed you, if they thought there was
any profit to be made that way— making your hide into parchment perhaps—but
they did not. What did they actually want of you?"
"Actually it was only the Sword Wayfinder they wanted. And
when they got it, they were so busy worrying about what to do with it that
they never got around to wanting anything much from me ... except to ask me
where I had got Wayfinder, and from whom."
"And what did you tell them?"
"Lady—Lady Tigris—I could give them only the same poor
answers I have given you."
With every heartbeat of time that fled, she could feel her brief
allotment of opportunity rapidly running out. Every moment Tigris spent asking
questions, puzzling over the answers, and yearning to rend this poor fool to
bloody ribbons with her nails, the inevitable end was drawing steadily nearer.
Her end would come when Wood learned that she had taken the Sword of Wisdom,
and was keeping the discovery from him. At that moment her gamble for freedom
would turn out to have been a catastrophic blunder.
Valdemar, in the moments when her attention faltered, had begun to
tell her the story of his life. The existence of a grape-grower sounded
extremely dull.
Still she forced herself to listen patiently, hoping to gain the
clue she needed, even though the timekeeper in her head was running, as regularly as her
speeding pulse.
Now the first real suspicion has been born in his mind. Now he is
considering sending out a demon to check up on me ...
"Cease babbling about grapes!" she shrieked at her
captive. "Why are you here? Why were you in the camp of Hyrcanus?"
Valdemar, with an effort maintaining his own calm, revealed to his
questioner his purpose in setting out on the journey which had brought him
first in contact with the Silver Queen, and then afoul of the Blue Temple.
He did not say anything to Tigris about the Sword of Healing, and
she did not raise the subject.
All this seemed to Tigris to be bringing her no closer to
understanding what she ought to do next. It was maddening to think that the
Sword on which she had abruptly decided to risk her life was giving her the
answer she had to have, but she was unable to interpret it. Her anger flared at
this babbling fool of a peasant, at the Sword, at the whole world and her life
in it. And then her rage began to settle, to congeal into a deadly calm that
tasted bitterly of despair.
She said: "All very fine ... for a grower of grapes. But I
don't see how any of that helps me." She raised the Sword of Wisdom again,
glaring at it. "All right! Powers of the Sword, I have accepted that for
some reason you want me to make this grower of grapes my own. Whatever
happens, I intend to keep him, until you deign to show me what his usefulness
may be. And when are you going to get around to that?"
Valdemar shook his head. He offered mildly: "Wayfinder will
never answer a question of that type. But it occurs to me that, being a
sorceress yourself—no offense intended—you may be making too much of the idea
of sacrifice and magic."
"What do you mean?"
"I mean the Sword might simply be indicating that you are to
take me with you somewhere."
Her blue eyes widened. "Is that it, Sword? Am I now to travel
to another place, taking this peasant along?"
At once, to the young woman's immense relief, the Sword responded
strongly. The tip moved away from Valdemar, and now pointed almost straight
west.
"You do know something, fellow, after all." Her spirits
rising abruptly, Tigris half-jokingly remarked: "Perhaps your function is
going to be that of counselor, interpreter of Swords for me."
Valdemar shrugged his enormous shoulders. "It is only that I
have had that Sword, and tried to use it, longer than you have. And you appear
somewhat distracted at the moment. As if something were preventing you from
thinking clearly."
But his companion was no longer listening. Once more addressing
Wayfinder, Tigris demanded: "And where are we to go? How far? But no,
never mind, of course you cannot tell me that. I have been given a direction.
The real question is, should we walk, or run, or will we need a griffin?"
Again Valdemar shrugged. Of course the Sword was not going to tell
them how far away the goal, whatever it was, might be.
The young man saw little future in trying to do anything but
cooperate with this woman for the time being. She was evidently a practitioner
of evil magic, but she had also rescued him from death and perhaps worse.
Once shown a clear course of action, Tigris was decisive. Already
she was giving a magical command, together with a shrill whistle, calling her
own griffin from the camp a hundred meters distant.
In another moment it was Valdemar's turn to be distracted. He was
awed, and frightened, watching the griffin approach and land beside them.
Getting aboard the hideous winged beast required some courage of
Valdemar. It was not, of course, that he really had any choice. His huge frame
was cramped in the small space available in the left side pannier, but the
extra weight seemed to make little difference to the griffin. The young man had
heard that these creatures' powers of flight depended far more on magic than on
any physical strength of wing.
His captor was already aboard, straddling the central saddle,
glaring down at Valdemar in his lower seat with imperious impatience. In a
moment they were breathtakingly airborne. Tigris steered the beast, sometimes
by kicks, sometimes by silken reins, or murmured words, or all of these means
in combination—steered so that the Sword always pointed straight past the
creature's leonine and frightful head.
They were heading approximately west.
Tigris soon resumed her conversation with Valdemar, demanding help
from him, impatiently listening to his replies, revealing more than she
intended about her desperate situation. She was trying every approach she
could think of, in an attempt to fathom this youth's mysterious importance,
perhaps absolute necessity, to the success of her effort to escape Wood's
dominance.
Suddenly she demanded: "What do you know about me,
grape-grower?"
"Not much, lady. Only the very little you have just told me.
And . . . one thing more."
"What?"
"It's plain enough, isn't it? When I had the chance to hold
Wayfinder in my own hands, and demand guidance from it—that very Sword that you
are now depending on—it guided me to you."
"What?"
Patiently Valdemar explained what his question had been, and
concluded, "The Sword must have directed me to you. I asked my question of Wayfinder,
and followed its directions consistently—and here you are."
The enchantress almost laughed—but not quite. Though inexperienced
with Wayfinder, her theoretical knowledge of the Swords was substantial. She
realized that this one's devious indications, like the powers of any Sword, had
to be taken very seriously indeed.
She said: "You mean you think I am somehow going to help you
find your bride-to-be?"
"I hardly think that you are meant to be my bride, so I
suppose it must be that." Valdemar added after a pause: "First I was
led to another woman, who was not the one I wanted to marry, but I suppose
somehow brought me closer to her. And now I have been brought to you."
Tigris allowed a sneering comment to die unsaid. She supposed that
in a way the Swords were all quite democratic; to Wayfinder, the status of its
wielder, or the gravity of the quest, would not matter in the least.
Vine-grower or duke, king or swineherd, princess of magic or homeless beggar,
all would be on an equal footing to the gods' weapons. And so would the goals
they sought.
Wayfinder still pointed straight ahead; the griffin still bore on
untiringly. A good thing, Tigris congratulated herself, that she had not
decided to try walking.
"It could be worse, grape-grower. Had this mount not been
available, we might be riding Dactylartha's back." Even as Tigris spoke,
she looked round warily once more.
"Is that the name of another griffin?" "No creature
so mild and friendly as that." The youth looked back too, seeing nothing
but the clouded sky. Was this mysterious Dactylartha the being that she feared?
He inquired: "This creature, as you call it, follows us?"
"It does, right closely—but at my own orders."
Then your fear, the young man thought, must be for someone or
something else.
Valdemar gritted his teeth and continued to endure the journey. At
moments when, because of weather or an unexplained lurching of the beast
beneath him, things got particularly bad, he tried closing his eyes. But being
deprived of sight only made things worse.
Once or twice he asked: "Where do you expect the Sword to
guide us?"
"To a place where I can find what I need."
From time to time Tigris spoke again to Wayfinder, questioned it,
in a language Valdemar did not know. He inquired: "Is it too much to ask—I
couldn't hear you clearly—exactly what query you have just put to our
guide?"
Tigris ignored the question. Her face was grim.
The great wings beat on, marking out slices of time and space.
With every fleeting moment Tigris felt an incremental growth of fear. An
increase of the driving, nagging, growing terror that she would not be able to
reach her goal before her Ancient Master caught wind of her treacherous
intention. The goal to which the Sword was guiding her, for all she knew, might
still be halfway around the world.
She had not asked the Sword of Wisdom for safety.
And Wayfinder, upon which her life now depended, was forcing her
to bring this peasant clod along. And still she had no inkling why.
ON having Wayfinder fall so unexpectedly into her hands, Tigris
had needed only a moment to make her great decision. She would strike for
freedom, gambling impulsively on the Sword of Wisdom's tremendous power. After
all, there was no telling when, if ever, an equal opportunity would arise. She
had expected quick meaningful answers from this weapon of the gods, affording
her a fighting chance of success in her revolt against her Swordless Master.
But so far, to her growing terror and rage, things were not
working out as she had hoped.
In her anger, she lashed out at the grape-growing peasant
Valdemar. He was the handiest target; and besides, there was something
intrinsically irritating in the very nature of this young man with whose
presence the Sword had saddled her for some indeterminate time to come.
Bridling her impatience and fury, concentrating her attention,
straining to be logical, she resumed her questioning as they flew. She dared
not harm this oaf seriously until she could determine just what his purpose in
her life might be.
The peasant answered her questions with an irritating lack of
fear—as if he were confident in being indispensable to her.
But she had practically no success in extracting useful
information from him.
In something like despair she demanded: "So, what am I to do
with you when I reach the end of this flight?"
"You will let me go my way, I hope. Perhaps my bride will be
there."
Tigris told him what he could do with his bride. Then, as the
griffin bore them over a lifeless wilderness of splintered rock, an idea
struck her, with the force of inspiration.
"I wonder if I have now carried you far enough," she
mused aloud. "Perhaps the Sword will be satisfied if I leave you in
safekeeping here, while I go on, unencumbered, to solve the next step of the
puzzle, whatever it may be."
Safekeeping? Valdemar, not knowing what she had in mind, or
whether to be pleased or worried, clung to his seat in silence. Decisively the
young enchantress reined her griffin around in a horizontal loop, and caused
the beast to land on a rocky pinnacle perhaps twenty or thirty meters high. The
small flat space that formed this spire's top was totally inaccessible from the
ground.
"Now get off," she commanded.
"Ma'am?"
"You heard me, insolent fool! Get out, get off. If this mode
of transportation bothers you, you may be free of it for a time at least. I
will be back for you, I suppose, when I have performed the next step required
by the Sword."
Silently, somewhat awkwardly, Valdemar climbed out of his basket,
planting one foot after the other carefully on the one square meter or so of
flat rock not occupied by the crouching body of the griffin itself. He stood
there carefully, not saying anything. He was thinking that the Sword had
brought him to this pass, and there must be some benefit in it for him. At
least in potential.
Tigris settled herself in the central saddle and flicked the
reins. Her mount sprang back into the air.
But then, when she would have urged on her steed again, she found
the damned Sword in her right hand pointing inexorably straight back to the
abandoned man.
Muttering abuse and imprecations, she steered the animal back to
land on the spire again, a process that made Valdemar crouch and cling in fear,
ducking under one of the great wings to keep from being knocked into a deadly
fall.
"Get on!" his persecutor commanded.
The youth needed no second invitation. In a moment they were airborne
again, the satisfied Sword once more pointing almost due west. Valdemar,
settling himself more comfortably in his basket, remarked against the rush of
air: "So, it seems that Wayfinder insists that our fates are somehow bound
together."
Tigris did not answer.
"Do you know where we are going?" he asked patiently.
Eyes of blue fire burned at him. "Plague me with one more
question and I'll slice out your tongue!"
"No, you won't."
The griffin, urged on by its mistress, was swiftly gaming speed,
far beyond anything attained in the first leg of their flight; the terrible
wind of their accelerating passage whipped Valdemar's words away and tore them
to shreds. Now Tigris made a magical adjustment to screen the wind somewhat,
and managed to hear what her captive had said when he bravely repeated it. But
she said nothing in reply.
Valdemar, fighting to keep calm, continued: "As I see it, you
can't afford to do me any serious harm. Because the Sword insists that you need
me for something, but you don't know what it is. I'd like to know the answer too, and it might help me
figure it out if I knew exactly what you are trying to get the Sword to do for
you."
Tigris, resisting the urge to commit magical violence upon this
fool, stubbornly remained silent.
Still she had no more idea than did her reluctant passenger of
where they were going, and under her controlled calm the terror of her own
ignorance, her fear of Wood, was threatening to overwhelm her. Her imagination
could readily supply a hundred destinations, objectives to which Wayfinder
could be sending her. But she had no real reason to credit any of them.
Hours passed, tempting Tigris to despair, while their great steed
still hurtled toward the west, now angling somewhat to the south, at
mind-numbing velocity. Valdemar was stunned to see how the sun's normal westward
passage slowed, then stopped for them, then began to reverse itself. The
griffin's wings had long ago become an almost invisible blur. Great masses of
cloud, above, below, and near them churned past.
Tigris, almost lost in her own thoughts, became chillingly
certain that Wood had by now had more than enough opportunity in which to
suspect, if not actually prove, her treachery. And it was not the Ancient One's
habit to delay punishment until he was presented with airtight proof.
And then, just when the enchantress had begun to wonder if her
Master's magic had already found her and begun to destroy her life, and the
terrible flight was going to endure forever, the Sword of Wisdom suddenly swung
its sharp point downwards.
Tigris hastily moved to instruct her magic steed, directing it
carefully toward the indicated goal.
Obediently the griffin descended, through layers of cloud and
slanting sunlight to the waiting earth.
They emerged from the clouds at no more than mountain-top altitude. Valdemar,
reviving from a kind of trance brought on by cold and monotony, observed in a
dull voice that the object of their journey appeared to be nothing but an
extensive desert. He had no idea how far they were from the wasteland where
their flight had started.
Tigris, moved by some impulse toward human feeling to engage in
conversation, agreed. Thinking aloud, she speculated that Wayfinder might have
brought them here in search of the Sword of Vengeance.
"Farslayer? How would that help you?"
"A dullwitted question. A bright young man like you must know
the virtue of that Sword."
Within a minute or two the griffin brought its riders safely to a
gentle landing on the earth.
Muttering words of control into the nearest ear of the huge
leonine head before her, Tigris climbed lithely from her saddle with drawn
Sword, to stand confronting a harsh, lifeless-looking landscape under a midday
sun. Valdemar promptly joined her, without waiting to be commanded. All was
quiet, except for a faint whine of wind moving a drizzle of sand around their
feet.
The Sword in the young woman's hand was pointing now in the
direction of a barren hillock nearby.
Together Valdemar and Tigris began to walk that way.
As they drew near the hillock, he raised a hand to point toward
its top. Up there, the cruciform outline of a black hilt showed against the
distant sky, as if the point of a Sword were embedded in the ground, or in
something that lay on the earth.
Silently, keeping their discovery in view, the pair trudged toward
the modest summit. What at a distance had appeared to be a Sword was one
indeed. At close range the weapon was identifiable as Farslayer. The Sword of
Vengeance was stuck through the ribcage of a half-armored skeleton, nearly
buried in the sand.
"So," Tigris breathed, "I was right. It is to be
his death. That is my only chance to escape from him. So be it, then."
Valdemar noted that the garments adorning the anonymous skeleton
had once been rich, and gold rings still adorned some of the bony fingers.
Tigris, murmuring some words of her art in an exultant tone,
stretched out her hand to take hold of the black hilt. But scarcely had she
possessed Farslayer, when there sounded a deep, dry whispering out of the low
clouds above. Valdemar, looking up sharply, could see them stirring in turmoil.
"What is it?" the young man asked in a hushed voice. At
the same time he unconsciously took a step nearer his companion, as if some
instinct told him that he needed her protection.
Before Tigris could reply, there emerged from the lowering cover
of clouds a churning gray vortex, a looming threat the size of a griffin, but
barely visible to Valdemar. He found the silent onrush of this phenomenon all
the more frightening because his eyes were almost willing to believe that
nothing at all was there.
"It is Dactylartha," Tigris said in a low, calm voice.
"Just stand where you are."
Valdemar nodded. Meanwhile, though his eyes had little to report,
wind shrieked and roared about his ears, and those of the woman standing beside
him on the hill.
That was only the beginning. The wind soon quieted, but Valdemar's
stomach was literally sickened by the presence of the creature that now
appeared; now he realized that this entity in the air above him, or something
like it, must be what had sickened him before.
But Tigris was speaking to the thing, then boldly challenging it,
with the businesslike air of a woman long inured to facing things this bad, and
even worse.
Valdemar stood swaying slightly, averting his eyes from what was almost
impossible to see anyway. He did not need his companion to tell him that, for
the first time in his life, he was having a direct encounter with a demon.
Tigris, facing the thing boldly, appeared to be perfectly
comfortable and in control. She spoke to the demon sharply, calling it by the
name of Dactylartha.
Valdemar, retching helplessly despite his empty stomach, his
knees shaky, had all he could do to keep from collapsing to the ground. Instead
he forced himself to stand almost upright.
To his relief the great demon was paying him no heed. Dimly
Valdemar could hear the voice of Dactylartha, a sound that reminded him of dry
bones breaking. The demon was speaking only to Tigris, saying something to the
effect that it would join her in rebellion, or at least refrain from reporting
her to the Master, provided she immediately loaned it the Sword of Wisdom.
"Never."
"Then will the gracious lady consent to ask the oracle of the
gods one question on my behalf?"
Tigris sounded as if she might have the wit and nerve to be able
to win an argument with the creature. "Why do you want that?"
"I wish to locate my own life, great lady," muttered the
ghastly voice of Dactylartha. "Where it has been hidden I do not know. But
only by finding it again shall I be able to free myself of the power that the
Ancient One now has over me."
Valdemar, trying to remain sane, and to understand, remembered
with a shudder what little he had ever heard of the man who was sometimes
called the Ancient One. Valdemar could also recall hearing somewhere that the
only way to truly punish or control a demon—or to kill one—was to get at its life,
which was almost invariably hidden, sometimes a long way from where the creature
appeared and acted.
Whether Dactylartha was telling her the truth or not, Tigris did
not, would not, believe him. She was thinking that she dared not trust any of
his kind—this one, perhaps, least of all.
Valdemar watched her as she balanced the Sword of Vengeance in her
hands. Such was Farslayer's power, he knew, that Tigris—or anyone else—armed
with it would be able to cut down Wood himself, or any other foe, at any distance.
Only one other Sword, only Shieldbreaker itself, could provide a defense. What,
then, was holding her back? Only the ominous presence of Dactylartha, it would
seem.
"Will you ask the question I want asked of the Sword of
Wisdom?" the dry bones snapped.
"After I have won my own struggle. Support me in my fight
first!"
They were shrieking at each other now, the woman and her demonic
antagonist. Valdemar reeled and shuddered.
He put his hands over his eyes, then brought them down and stared.
To his horror the demon had now assumed the form of a giant manlike shape in
black armor, standing frighteningly close.
"Will you fight for him, then?" Tigris, her voice become
unrecognizable, demanded of the thing. "You had better revolt, with
me!"
"It may not be, great sorceress, it may not be! When his life
ends, so does mine." The aerial blur of Dactylartha's presence seemed to
intensify. A crushing weight seemed to be descending upon the stomach, and the
soul, of Valdemar.
The woman was ready for combat. She had sheathed Farslayer, and
her hands, one holding Wayfinder, rose in
the subtle gesture of a great magician. "If I
must slay you first, I will!"
The struggle was closed between Tigris and Dactylartha.
To Valdemar's limited perception, the outcome appeared horribly
uncertain.
Made more desperately ill than ever by the increased activity of
the monstrous demon, the young man thought he might be dying. But suddenly he found
himself completely free of illness, for the moment, as the magical powers of
the two contestants strained and nullified each other.
Terror of the demon overrode all other fears. Valdemar lunged
desperately for the Sword still sheathed at the slender waist of Tigris. In a
moment he had seized the black hilt of Farslayer, pulled it from its scabbard,
and was hurling it with all his strength at Dactylartha's overwhelming
presence—it was a crude effort, such as any unskilled fighter might make in
desperation, throwing any sharp object at a foe.
The Sword of Vengeance, relentlessly indifferent to its user's
skill or lack thereof, shot straight through the demon's flickering,
half-substantial image, and in a moment had vanished over the distant horizon.
Valdemar had forgotten for the moment that the demon's life must
be hidden elsewhere.
Dactylartha, frozen in position, stared for a long moment at his
two human foes, glaring with eyes that were no longer eyes, out of a face no
longer even a passable imitation of humanity. And in the next moment the demon
died, shrieking a great shriek, his image exploding in spectacular fashion, and
yet so quickly that he was able to do no harm to Tigris or Valdemar—nor carry
any reports back to the Ancient One.
His guts hollow with fear, but his eyes and mind once more clear, Valdemar
discovered Tigris down on one knee, struggling with the after-effects of the
contest.
Stumbling closer, he seized her by the arm. "It's gone. I
think it must be dead."
"Dead and gone," Tigris confirmed, in a dull voice.
Moving slowly, also stumbling at first, she regained her feet. Then some energy
returned. Shaking herself free of Valdemar's grip, she cursed him for a peasant
coward: "I could have managed that demon without wasting Farslayer on it!
But nothing else will give me a chance to kill my Master, or to break free! I
will be helpless without it . . . Damn you! Damn you, grower of poisoned
grapes! I might have coped with the fiend by my own strength! You have cost me
my chance for freedom, and damned me to hell!"
The youth recoiled, shaken. "We might get it back—"
"There will be no time."
Valdemar asked humbly: "What do we do now?"
For a moment Tigris brandished Wayfinder, as if she meant to cut
him down with it. Then, in a voice bleak with depression, close to despair, she
admitted: "Still I dare not hurt you."
Valdemar could find nothing helpful to say.
The woman cried out: "Sword, what am I to do? How am I to
survive?"
Wayfinder, displaying the infinite patience of the gods, silently
indicated Valdemar.
Tigris glared speculatively at her silent counselor. Then a gleam
of hope appeared in her eyes. "Is it possible that the Sword of Wisdom has
allowed for your idiocy in wasting Farslayer? In that case, peasant, it appears
there may still be hope."
"I suppose we are to travel again?"
"Is that it, Sword? Yes, I'll drag him with me again,
wherever you command. But which way?"
Promptly Wayfinder directed her to the griffin, which had been cowering like a
beaten puppy in the demon's presence. Now, with Dactylartha gone, Tigris was
quickly able to reinstill in the lesser creature something like a sense of
duty.
As soon as she and Valdemar were airborne, Way-finder aimed them
back eastward, in approximately the same direction from which they had come.
Tigris accepted the command without comment.
Once more they went hurtling above the clouds. Their speed soon
filled Valdemar with awe by bringing on a premature sunset behind them. Both of
the griffin's passengers drew the obvious conclusion from their direction:
that Wayfinder was guiding them back to somewhere near—perhaps very near—their
original point of departure, at the overrun Blue Temple camp.
Tigris said little as they flew. Her thoughts were dominated by
the notion that the pair were getting closer to Wood with every passing moment.
Once her companion was able to hear her questioning herself, or
fate: "Am I to go to him, try to lie to him, defend my actions? That
cannot be! As well plead with him for mercy."
The young man, despite his own desperate situation, felt a
stirring of something like sympathy.
The enchantress muttered several somewhat amended forms of her
wish for survival and for freedom, asking the Sword for some means of
protection against the Ancient One, rather than the ability to destroy him.
"Sword, save me from him! Save me, somehow!"
From the very beginning of her contemplated escape, Tigris had
been aware of the extreme danger involved in defying a wizard as powerful as
the Ancient One. And Tigris knew, far better than most people, how powerful he
was.
Even so, she now. feared that she had almost certainly
underestimated the truth.
"What am I to do?" she breathed. She was looking at
Valdemar as she spoke, though perhaps not really seeing him.
He glared at her sourly. "Do you now want my willing
cooperation?"
The sorceress snarled back, "From the first moment I saw you,
I have suspected that you could not be as innocent as you appeared. Very well,
if you have any revelations that you have been holding in reserve, let's have
them now.
"Or else," she continued a moment later, speaking now as
if Valdemar were not there, as if she were talking to her griffin, "some
other power may be cleverly using this peasant as a catspaw." Suddenly she
faced her prisoner again. "What say you to that, grape-grower?"
He shook his head, as calmly as he could. "Why is it
necessary for me to be something other than what I am?"
The eyes of Tigris, filled with pain and fear, seemed to be boring
into him. "When one has lived with Master Wood for any length of time, as
I have, nothing can any longer be considered simply what it is. It is necessary
to approach every question in those terms."
"Why did you choose to serve him, then?"
This, it appeared, was an unanswerable question. Tigris faced
forward again, and the griffin flew on, magically tireless. Valdemar wondered
if it would ever have to stop and rest, or feed.
When Tigris's attack had fallen on the Blue Temple encampment,
Sergeant Brod had been close enough to observe the results, and to be shaken by
the experience. But by good fortune he had also been distant enough to survive,
unnoticed by the attackers.
In Brod's estimation, the new conqueror, even if she did appear to be hardly
more than a girl, was obviously powerful enough to be a worthy patron. He
wanted to attach himself to her somehow, if that were possible without taking
too much risk.
Torn between fear and ambition, the Sarge considered approaching
the camp, and representing himself to its new masters as a victim of the Blue
Temple. But soon caution prevailed; there were events in progress here that he
could not begin to understand. Later, perhaps, when he had learned more. For
the time being he decided to sneak away instead.
Ben, hiking industriously toward home, warily scanning the skies
ahead, was just saying that, in his opinion, they might be going to get away
with Woundhealer after all. At that instant he heard Zoltan scream behind him.
Spinning round, Ben was almost knocked off his feet by a swooping
griffin. The thing must have come down at them from behind, and was now rapidly
gaining altitude again with both Zoltan and the Sword of Mercy in its claws.
While Ben stared, open-mouthed and helpless, the great beast swung round in the
air, and rapidly departed in the direction of the Blue Temple camp.
On the ground Ben ran hopelessly, shouting curses, after the
rapidly receding griffin. "Drop the Sword!" he screamed at his
hapless comrade. "Drop—"
But Zoltan either could not hear him, or was powerless to obey.
Meanwhile, the Ancient One's most malignant suspicions of Tigris
were in the process of being inflamed by a whispered report from a certain
lesser, junior demon. This creature had just arrived at Wood's headquarters
with the report that Dactylartha had been slain.
And even that was not the worst news: To the surprise of the
attackers, the Sword of Wisdom had been in the Blue Temple camp—and Tigris had
seized that mighty weapon for herself, and taken it away with her.
Wood, seated now on a plain chair in a small room near his
laboratory, did not move a muscle. He said quietly: "She sent me no report
of any such discovery."
The bearer of bad news offered no comment on that fact.
"Her official report," the great magician continued,
"was very vague. Something about 'great success'—and that was all. I
suppose there is no doubt of any of these disquieting things you tell me?"
The creature made no attempt to conceal its unholy glee. "Absolutely
none, my Master! And—no doubt of this fact either, great lord!—Dactylartha was
slain by Tigris herself!"
"So."
"With the Sword of Vengeance!"
Wood sat listening carefully to the few additional details that
he was told. His eyes were closed, his face a mask. He tended to believe the
allegations against Tigris. Yet he could not be absolutely sure that his most
favored aide has in fact turned traitor—this report might be a mistake or a
lie, the result of some in-house intrigue.
But with at least one, and perhaps more, of the ten surviving
Swords at stake, he was certainly not about to take any chances.
One thing that the Ancient One did secretly fear intensely,
without trying to deceive himself about the fact, was Farslayer. Though he
betrayed no sign of this externally, in his imagination he could feel the
great cold of that steel as it slid between his ribs, or split his breastbone.
But the Sword of Vengeance had evidently gone to finish
Dactylartha.
Wood actually did not know where that demon's life had been
hidden, except that he thought it had been at a reassuringly great distance. Well, there was
nothing to be done about that problem just now.
But Tigris. ... If she was indeed now armed with the Sword of
Wisdom, she would be very dangerous. He could not afford to put off action for
a moment.
As night fell, and the stars came out above her speeding griffin,
Tigris, still mounted in the saddle with her prisoner Valdemar huddled beside
her in his basket, felt increasingly certain that her treachery must now be
known to Wood. She knew a foretaste of the terrible punishment that it would no
longer be possible to avoid.
Her worst fears were coming true. In an abyss of terror, feeling
her mental defenses crumbling, Tigris realized that nothing could keep her
Master from trying to wreak terrible vengeance upon her.
Valdemar stared at his companion helplessly. He could see by
Tigris's behavior that she thought something terrible was happening or about to
happen to her, and he was afraid of what this would mean to him.
At this point Tigris in her panic redoubled the urgency of her
demands on Wayfinder. She stormed and pleaded with the Sword, that it must show
her a way to escape.
"Help me! Save me!"
The Sword still pointed straight ahead, along the griffin's
rippling neck.
Then, staring hollow-eyed at the Sword, the blond sorceress almost
despaired. "Or is it," she whispered, "that even the gods'
weapons cannot help me? That you can only guide me straight back to him—that he
is too strong—even for you?"
A moment later, with her passenger watching and listening in
frozen horror, the terrified young woman was retracting that statement, fearful
that she had offended the mighty powers ruling Wayfinder.
Valdemar, hesitant to speak, gaped at his companion.
In this raging, cursing, pleading woman there remained no visible
trace of a figure he thought he had once glimpsed, a wistful girl who had once
paused to listen to a robin sing.
Suddenly some part of her terrible rage was directed at Valdemar.
She glared at him and snarled.
Turning in the central saddle, she raised the Sword of Wisdom in
both hands, to strike.
This madwoman was on the brink of killing him! There was no way to
dodge the stroke. He was trying to straighten his cramped legs in the basket
for a hopeless effort to seize the deadly Sword—when a sudden and violent
change transformed the finely modeled face above him.
Suddenly and unexpectedly, the last curse died in the throat of
Tigris.
Her body lurched in the saddle. Her eyelids closed. Wayfinder,
which she had been brandishing for a death-stroke at Valdemar, slipped from her
hands and fell.
ZOLTAN was gone, and Woundhealer with him, and there was nothing
Ben could do about either loss. Doggedly the huge man had resumed his trudge
into the north. From that direction, as the bird-messengers had told him, the
Prince of Tasavalta and his force were now advancing; and if all went well he
ought to meet Mark soon.
But Ben was unable to make much headway. Time and again flying
reptiles appeared in the sky, forcing him to lie low, waiting in such shelter
as he could find until the searchers were out of sight again.
At night, great owls, dispatched by Mark as forerunners of the
advancing Tasavaltan power, came to bring Ben words of counsel and
encouragement. They kept him moving in the right direction, and helped him to
remain hidden successfully through the hours of darkness. Freighted with tokens
of Karel's shielding power, the owls drifted and perched protectively near Ben
while some of Wood's lesser demons prowled through the clouded skies above.
Yambu lay in another self-imposed trance, placed by her captors in
a newly erected tent in what had once been the Blue Temple camp. The Silver
Queen's condition was the subject of cautious probing by minor wizards who had
been part of Tigris's attacking force. These folk were prudently waiting for
orders, from their vanished mistress or from Wood himself, before they took
any more direct action regarding this important prisoner.
Only partially, intermittently aware of the world around her,
Yambu lay drifting mentally. Her dreams were often pleasant, rarely horrible,
on occasion only puzzling. Most of the dreams in the latter category concerned
the Emperor.
As often as not, Yambu's recent near-rejuvenation now seemed to
her only part of the same continuing dream.
At the moment when Wood's vengeance fell upon Tigris, a
thunderbolt no less startling for having been expected, her last coherent
thought was that the Sword of Wisdom had somehow failed her.
The crushing spell aimed at her mind permitted her a final moment
of mental clarity in which she gasped out some curse against the Sword. After
that she was aware of crying out in desperation for her mother. And then a
great darkness briefly overcame her.
Tigris—or she who had been Tigris—was still in the griffin's
saddle when an altered awareness returned, and her eyes cleared; but when her
lids opened they gazed upon a world that she no longer knew.
When Valdemar saw the hands of stricken Tigris relax their grip
upon Wayfinder's hilt, he lunged upward and forward from his basket. He was
making a desperate, almost unthinking effort to catch the Sword of Wisdom as it
fell.
The hilt eluded his frantic grab; the blade did not. Cold metal
struck and stung his hands. His try at capturing the
Sword succeeded, but the keen edges gashed two of his fingers
before he could control its weight.
For a long moment he was in danger of falling out of the swaying
basket. At last he recovered his balance, now gripping the Sword's hilt firmly,
in hands slippery with his own blood. Valdemar glared at the dazed woman whose
face hovered a little above his own. In a tone somewhere near the top of his
voice he demanded: "What happened? What's wrong with you?"
The young woman was slumped down in the saddle, the reins sagging
in her grip. She swayed so that he grabbed her arm in fear that she might fall;
but still she appeared to be fully conscious. Her only reply to Valdemar's
question was a wide-eyed smile and a girlish giggle.
Meanwhile the griffin, evidently sensing that something well out
of the ordinary had occurred, was twisting round its leonine head on its
grotesque long neck, trying to see what was happening on its own back.
Tigris giggled again.
"Fly!" Valdemar yelled at the curious beast. "Fly
on, straight ahead for now!"
The hybrid monster, presented with these commands by an
unaccustomed voice, kept its head turned back for a long disturbing moment,
fixing the youth with a calculating and evil gaze, as if to estimate this new master's
strengths and weaknesses. After that long moment, to Valdemar's considerable
relief, it faced forward again and went on flying. The reins lay along the
creature's neck, where Tigris had let them drop.
The evening sky was rapidly darkening around them. Demon-like
masses of shadow and cloud went swirling by with the great speed of their
flight.
The young woman raised her head and spoke in a tiny, childish
voice.
"What did you say?" he asked.
She blinked at Valdemar. "I just wondered—where are we going?"
Her smile as she asked the question was sweet and tentative. She
looked somewhat dazed, but not particularly frightened. She seemed really,
innocently, uncertain of where she was.
The dropped Sword, the cut fingers, the sudden change, were
briefly all too much for Valdemar. He felt and gave voice to an outburst of
anger. He threw down the Sword—making sure it landed safely in his basket— and
raved, giving voice to anger at his situation and at the people, all of them by
his standards crazy, most of them bloodthirsty, among whom the precious Sword
had plunged him.
Meanwhile, the strange young woman who was mounted just above him
recoiled slightly, leaning away from Valdemar, her blue eyes rounded and
blinking, red mouth open.
What was wrong with this crazy woman now? But even that question
had to wait. The first imperative was to establish some real control over the
griffin. Now the beast's unfriendly eyes looked back again. The course of their
flight was turning into a great slow spiral.
The first step in dealing with this difficulty, obviously, was to
use the Sword. Valdemar did so. While Tigris looked on wide-eyed but without
comment, the young man asked to be guided to a safe place to land. Wayfinder
promptly obliged.
The indication was toward an area not directly below. Therefore
Valdemar was required to head the griffin there. Strong language and loud tones
accomplished the job, though only with some difficulty. When he thought the
creature slow to turn, he even cuffed it on the back of the neck. As a farmer's
son, he had had some practice in driving stubborn loadbeasts, and saw no reason
why the same
techniques might not work in this situation—at least for a little while.
Presently they were over a good-sized lake, with a single island
of substantial size visible near the middle, a dark blob in a great reflection
of the last of the sunset. Soon Valdemar managed to guide the creature to a successful
landing on the island.
Tigris, her face, arms, and lower legs pale blurs in the deep
dusk, remained in her saddle until her companion told her to dismount.
At the same moment Valdemar began to climb out of his own basket,
then hesitated, worried lest the griffin fly away once they both got off. But
he could not very well remain permanently on board. Tigris had already leapt
from her saddle to the ground, and in a moment he followed.
The griffin turned its head and snarled; the young man spoke
harshly and gripped his Sword, wondering if the great beast might be going to
attack them.
Well, that was simply another danger they would have to accept for
the time being. Still carrying Wayfinder, and keeping an eye on the griffin,
the youth went over to where Tigris was standing uncertainly. Angrily he began
to question the woman who, an incredibly short time ago, had taken him
prisoner.
Truly, the change had been drastic, whatever its cause. Valdemar
was now confronted by a stricken girl who looked back at him anxiously.
Feeling angry all over again, he demanded: "What is this,
some kind of joke? Some kind of pretense?"
Recoiling from him, the young woman abruptly burst into sobs.
There was a convincingness about this sudden relapse into childishness that
caused Valdemar to feel the hair rise on the back of his neck, an unpleasant
sensation that even the demon had not managed to produce. This was no game or trick, but
something completely out of her control.
She mumbled something through her tears.
"What's that you said?"
"I'm—afraid," she choked out. Tears were making some
kind of cosmetic run on her eyelids, blotching her cheeks. Another moment, and
she was clinging innocently to Valdemar as if for protection.
Automatically he put his arms around her, comforting.
Paradoxically, Valdemar found himself even angrier than before at Tigris. Angry
at her and at his general situation.
Not only angry at her, but still afraid of her in a way. What if
she were to recover from this fit, or whatever it was, as abruptly as she had
fallen into it? He didn't know whether he wanted her to recover or not.
Whatever magic might still have been binding Valdemar at the
moment the sorceress had been stricken— obviously there had not been enough to
keep him from lunging for the Sword—was now undone. He had felt the last
remnants of that enchantment passing, falling from him, like spiders' webs
dissolving in morning sunlight.
"Where are we?" she was asking him again, now in what
sounded like tearful trust. She wiped at her eyes. "Who are you?" she
added, with more curiosity than fright.
"Who am I. A good question. I ask that of myself, sometimes.
Here, sit down, rest, and let me think." Seating his oddly transformed
companion upon a mossy lump of earth—she obeyed directions like a willing
child—Valdemar paced about, wondering what question he ought now to ask the
Sword.
His cut fingers, still slowly dripping blood, kept him from
concentrating, and he used the peerless edge of Wayfinder to cut a strip from
the edge of his own shirt, thinking to make a bandage. The crouching griffin
kept turning
its head watchfully from time to time, as if estimating its chances of
successful escape or rebellion. Valdemar thought that the beast's eyes glowed
faintly with their own fire in the deepening night.
Tigris, sitting obediently where he had put her, had ceased to
weep and was slowly recovering something like equanimity. Now, when he got
close enough in the gloom to see her face, he could tell that she was smiling
at him. It was a vastly transformed smile, displaying simple joy and anxious
friendliness. A child, waiting to be told what was going to happen next.
As Valdemar stared at the metamorphosed Tigris, a new suspicion
really hit him for the first time: the suspicion that this impossible,
dangerous young woman could be, in fact, his Sword-intended bride to be.
Going to her, he unbuckled the empty swordbelt from her slender
waist, and, while she watched trustingly, fastened it around his own. Then he
sheathed Wayfinder. Waving the little bloodstained rag of cloth which he had
been trying to tie up his hand, he asked: "I don't suppose you could help
me with this?"
"What?"
"It's just that trying to bandage my own fingers, working
with one hand, is rather awkward."
And when he held out the cloth to Tigris, she made a tentative
effort to help him. But the sight, or touch, of blood at close range evidently
upset her, and the bandaging was only marginally successful.
Gripping the black hilt of the Sword of Wisdom in his now
precariously bandaged hand, Valdemar drew it and asked: "Safety for
myself—and for my intended bride— whoever she may be!"
The Sword promptly gave him a direction. Generally south again. He
decided that, since this island had been certified safe for the time being,
further travel would have to wait till morning.
The next question, of course, was whether the griffin was going to
get restless and fly away before sunrise. Or grow hungry, perhaps, and decide
to eat its erstwhile passengers.
Valdemar sighed, and decided they would take their chances here
for the night.
The remaining hours of darkness were spent uncomfortably, with
each passenger sleeping, or trying to sleep, in one of the side-baskets, which
were still fastened to the griffin's flanks. Some cargo in the right basket—the
most interesting items were food and blankets—was unloaded to make room for
Tigris. Valdemar thought it would be hard for the magical beast to attack them
while they were on its back; and if the thing felt moved to fly during the
night, it could hardly leave its passengers behind. As matters worked out, the
griffin remained so still during most of the night that Valdemar wondered from
time to time whether the beast had died. But he definitely felt more secure
staying in the basket.
As if his current crop of problems were not quite enough, Valdemar
continued to be nagged by worries about his untended vines back home, and about
his lack of a wife. The images rose before him of several of the women with
whom he had had temporary arrangements; all of them, for various reasons, had
proven unsatisfactory.
At last he slept, but fitfully.
In the morning, when it seemed that no more sleep was going to be
possible, Valdemar stretched and took stock of the situation. Tigris, as he
could see by peering across the empty saddle, was still sleeping like a babe.
She actually had one finger in her mouth.
The griffin, on feeling its heavier passenger stir, looked round lazily; but at least
it had done nothing—yet—in the way of a serious rebellion.
Valdemar had the Sword of Wisdom still gripped in his right hand.
Raising it again, he bluntly demanded: "Where is the woman I should
marry?"
His wrist was twisted by an overwhelming force. Remorselessly the
weapon continued to point out Tigris.
Dismounting with a grunt, straightening stiffened limbs, Valdemar
walked around to the animal's right flank and awakened his companion, who
rewarded him with a cheerful, vacant smile.
Then, chewing on some of the food they had removed from that cargo
basket, he attempted to nail down the Sword's meaning beyond any doubt.
Addressing Way-finder, he demanded: "Are you trying to tell me that this,
this one with me now, is the very woman? That this creature is not simply meant
to be a help of some kind to finding my rightful bride?"
The Sword, without a tremor, still indicated Tigris.
"Oh, by all the gods!" the young man roared. Such was
his disgust that he felt a serious impulse to throw this Sword away.
He did in fact make an abortive gesture toward that end, but such
was his practical nature that the Sword went no farther than necessary to stick
the sharp point in a nearby tree. A moment later and Valdemar had hastened to
retrieve the weapon of the gods. Wayfinder might produce some unpleasant
surprises, but still it seemed to be the only hope he had.
A few minutes later they were preparing to fly again. This time
Valdemar occupied the saddle, and Tigris went indifferently into the left
basket, where he had ridden as her prisoner.
Time for the orders of the day. Valdemar put some thought into his
request. "Sword ... I want to go home, to my own hut and my own vineyard.
I want to reach the place safely, and I want the world to leave me in peace once
I am there. Also I want to have there with me— someday, somehow—the woman who
should be my wife. Whoever she may be."
Pausing, Valdemar eyed Tigris. Sitting obediently in the basket
where he had put her, she returned his gaze with an eager, trustful look that
he at the moment found absolutely sickening.
He returned his concentration to the sharp Blade in his hands.
"With all those goals in mind, great Sword, give me a direction." The
response was quick and firm. "Very well! Thank you! Griffin, fly!"
He gave the last command with as much confidence as possible. If
the griffin only turned its head and looked at him, he was going to be forced
into some act of desperation.
Fortunately, things had not yet come to that. Gathering its
mighty limbs beneath it, the creature sprang into the air.
This morning's flight lasted for about an hour, and during its
entire course, controlling the griffin continued to be something of a problem.
Tigris, giggling and babbling what Valdemar considered irrelevancies,
distracted him and made his job no easier.
Wayfinder at least was predictably reliable. In response to Val's
continuing requests for safety for both passengers, the Sword guided them
through several aerial zigzags that had no purpose Valdemar could see. And
then, point tugging sharply downward, it indicated a place to land.
At that same hour, a great many kilometers away, the Ancient One
found himself able to spare a little time and thought to contemplate the
treachery of Tigris, and to decide upon the most satisfactory method of
revenge.
Another of Wood's inhuman secret agents had just brought confirmation that
he, Wood, had been able, from a distance, to inflict a severe loss of memory
upon his most faithless subordinate.
"And not only that, Master, but a complete regression to
near-childhood. The foul bitch is deliciously, perfectly, helpless!"
"It is a rather powerful spell." Wood nodded, somewhat
complacently. "I am not surprised at its success. If the Director of
Security for the Blue Temple could not resist it, our dear Tigris had no chance
... of course in her case, this treatment is meant as no more than a
preliminary penalty. One might say it is not really a punishment at all, only a
form of restraint. I want to neutralize the little wretch until I can spare the
time and thought to deal with her—as she truly deserves." He frowned at
his informant. "Now who is this companion you say she has? No one, I
trust, who is likely to kill her outright?"
"Only a man, Master. Don't know why she brought him along.
Not much magic to his credit. Youthful, physically large. A lusty fellow, by
the look of him, so I don't think he'll want to kill her very soon. He has of
course taken over the Sword Wayfinder now."
"And I suppose he has been making use of it—but to what end,
I wonder?"
"No doubt I can find out, great lord. Indeed, you have only
to give the word, and I will step in and take the Sword away from him. I, of
course, unlike the faithless Tigris, would bring the prize directly to you,
without—"
"You will not touch that Sword, or any other!" Wood
commanded firmly. "From now on that privilege is mine alone!"
"Of course, Master." The demon bowed, a swirling
movement of a half-material image.
"I," the Ancient One continued, "am presently going
to take the field myself."
There yet remained in the old magician's mind some nagging doubt
that his lovely young assistant had really turned against him—his ego really
found it difficult to accept that.
Perhaps it would be possible to learn the truth from her before
she died.
At first she had been somewhat frightened, coming awake out of
that awful dream—or sleep, or whatever it had been—to find herself straddling
the back of a flying griffin. A griffin was an unfamiliar creature—certainly
there had been nothing like it on the farm, home of her childhood, scene of
most of her remaining clear memories—but it was not completely strange. She
remembered—from somewhere—certain things about the species. Thus it proved to
be with many other components of this strange new world.
By now, the young woman who had been Tigris had just about decided
that this world in which she found herself—the world that had in it such an
interesting young man as her companion—was, taken all in all, a sweet,
wonderful place.
She who had been Tigris, her sophistication obliterated and her
knowledge very drastically reduced by the magical removal of most of the memories
of the later half of her life, continued to be very confused about her
situation. But in her restored innocence the young woman was mainly unafraid.
From her place in the passenger's basket she gazed thoughtfully at
Valdemar, looked at him for the thousandth time since—since the world had
changed. Since— whatever it was, exactly, that had happened.
Since, perhaps, she had awakened from a long sleep of troubled
dreams—and oh, it was good to be awake again!
She found herself still gazing at the strong young man. And she
found him pleasant indeed to look upon.
It was something of a shock—it was almost frightening—to realize
abruptly that she did not know his name.
In a loud clear voice she asked him: "Who are you?"
Turning a startled face, the youth in the saddle stared at her.
"It is now something like a full day, my lady, since we met. I have told
you almost as much as I can tell about myself. Have you no memory?"
She who had been Tigris did her best to consider. "No. Or, I
have some memory, I suppose, but—I don't remember who you are. Tell me
again."
The young man continued to stare at her. For the moment he said
nothing, only shaking his head slightly.
Gently she persisted. "But who are you? Where are we?"
When Valdemar did not answer, she began to be a little afraid of
him. She saw him as a very formidable person—even apart from his obviously
gigantic physical strength. He had an air of confidence and reliability.
After a while she told him as much, in simple words.
He gazed at her with returning suspicion. "So, I am to
believe that you are only a child now, and easily impressed? Is that it?"
She laughed girlishly. She could not really remain afraid of this
young man for long. He was too ... too ...
"Ah, Lady Tigris, if only 1 could be sure . . . but how can I
determine what you are really—but you have let me have the Sword, haven't you?
Oh, truly you are changed!"
The lady was frowning. "What did you call me?"
"Tigris. Lady Tigris."
"But why do you call me that? Are you playing some
game?"
"No game, no game at all. Not for me, certainly. By what name
should I call you, then?"
"Why, by my own."
"And that is—?"
"How can a friend of mine not know my name?" She paused,
thinking, her red lips parted. "But then I didn't know yours, did I? ...
my name is Delia. And now I remember that you did tell me your name
before—Valdemar. That has a strange sound, but I like it."
He looked at her for what felt like a long time. "What else
do you remember about me?"
"Why, that you are my friend. You have been helping me to—do
something." Gradually, with an effort, Delia was able to remember a few
other things that he had told her about himself, before—before the world had
changed.
Valdemar asked: "And what do you remember about the Sword of
Wisdom?"
She blinked at him. "What is that?"
He stared at her, the wind of flight whipping his long dark hair.
"We'll talk about it later," he said at last.
The longer the flight went on, the longer she looked at him, the
more definitely she who had been Tigris began to flirt with Valdemar,
innocently and sensuously at the same time.
Valdemar at first took no real notice of her smiles and subtle
eyelid-flutters, and occasional voluptuous stretches. He was watching the
griffin grimly, and from time to time he repeated his latest question to
Wayfinder: "Point me—point both of us—the way to safety."
Under his inexpert piloting, the great winged creature, continuing
to change course on demand at frequent, irregular intervals, carried the
couple back to some place that was half familiar-looking; Val, who as a rule
had a fairly good sense of direction, had the feeling they were not far from
the armed camp from which Tigris had marched him—it seemed like a terribly long
time ago.
Obviously Wayfinder was not guiding them directly toward his
vineyard. Well, having once decided to trust his life to the Sword's guidance,
he supposed he had better trust it all the way. And anyway, he wouldn't want to
arrive home with a griffin.
They landed in the middle of a small patch of forest.
Wood, once having made his decision to take the field in person,
had not delayed. Within a few minutes he was airborne, flying on his own griffin.
On his arrival at the camp which had been taken by Tigris, he took
charge at once, and ruthlessly. By dint of seriously terrorizing her former
subordinates, he was soon able to confirm—if any confirmation was still
needed—that Tigris had indeed captured the Sword Wayfinder, and had
deliberately failed to notify him.
All of Tigris's people who remained in or about the camp
automatically fell under grave suspicion in the eyes of the Ancient One. Those
who Wood thought should have prevented her defection were placed in the hands
of interrogation experts.
Wood had been in personal command of the camp for less than an
hour when an alarm was sounded. But this time the news was good: another
griffin, bringing in the Sword Woundhealer, along with a prisoner.
After gloating briefly over the Sword—no hands but his own took it
from the semi-intelligent beast—Wood turned his attention to the prisoner. At
the moment the wretch looked more dead than alive.
Thinking he recognized the fellow as Prince Mark's nephew, the
Ancient One employed the Sword of Mercy to heal his injuries—quite likely he
would be worth something in the way of ransom.
In a moment, as soon as Zoltan's eyes were clearly open, Wood
asked him gently: "Where is she now? Tigris?"
On recognizing where he was, and who was speaking to him, the
youth looked gratifyingly sick with terror. "I don't know," he
whispered hopelessly.
"No? Well, I suppose there's really no reason why you should.
But I'm sure there are interesting things you do know, young man. Things that I
shall be pleased to hear—you and I must have a long chat."
That was postponed. More news arrived: yet another new prisoner
had just been picked up in the vicinity of the camp, upon which he appeared to
have been spying.
Wood turned his attention to this man.
Brod, dragged in and supported by several guards, tremblingly
assured the wizard he had only been watching the camp because he had long
wanted to devote himself to the service of the mighty magician Wood as a
patron. He had been trying to find the best means of approach when he was
taken.
The Ancient One stared at him. Nothing pleased him so much as a
proper attitude of respect in those he spoke to. Brod, who thought he could
feel that gaze probing his bone marrow, clutched at the only hopeful thought
which he could find: at least he had not been trying to tell a lie.
"Tell me, Brod ..."
"Yes, sire?"
"What would you ask, if you were given the chance, from the
Sword called Wayfinder? I take it you know what I am talking about."
"Oh yes sir, yes sir. I know that Sword." The Sarge
swallowed with a great gulp. "Well sir. I'd ask a way, a direction, that
would let me fill my ambition of getting into your service, Lord Wood sir, and
continuing in your service, successfully, for a long, long time ..."
The Sarge stopped there, because the great wizard called Wood was
laughing; it was a silent and horrible display.
PRINCE Mark was heading south. He rode astride a great black
cantering riding-beast, with the bulky form of the old wizard Karel similarly
mounted at his side. They were long out of sight of home. Days ago the Prince
had ridden forth from the great gate of Sarykam at the head of a hundred
cavalry, supported by magicians, beastkeepers, a couple of supply wagons, and
semi-intelligent winged scouts and messengers. Ever since their departure the
Prince and his expeditionary force had been riding hard to reach the region
where his friends and enemies were still contending for a pair of priceless
Swords.
The Prince was wearing two swordbelts, each supporting one
sheathed Sword, so that a black hilt showed on each side of his waist. During
most of the day Mark had little to say. His gaze was usually fixed straight
ahead, and his countenance grim. He was ready for a fight, armed to the teeth,
coming to the struggle with both Sightblinder and Shieldbreaker in his
possession. The Swords Stonecutter and Dragonslicer, considered unlikely to be
of much use in the current situation, had been left in the armory in Sarykam.
The swift-moving Tasavaltan column kept moving generally south, in
the direction of the region from which Ben had last reported his position.
Scouts, both winged and human, ranged ahead continually.
Mark as he rode was nagged by the feeling that he ought to have
brought Stephen with him. But he knew it was better that he had not; he felt
comforted by the idea that the boy would be with his mother and perhaps afford
her some relief from her endless gloom.
At sunset, the Prince and his troops reached the fringe of the
barren country lying to the southwest of the Tasavaltan border. Mark ordered a
halt. This would be a dry camp; tomorrow would be time enough to look for
water.
Several times during the past few hours, winged scouts had
returned from the southwest to meet the column on the march. Now yet another of
these great birds, speeding from the same direction across the twilight sky,
arrived at the encampment.
This scout reported the ominous presence of griffins in the area.
The Prince cursed at the indications that the enemy was now in the
field too, in force. Mark ordered the beastmaster to dispatch more birds to
investigate.
"Day-flyers, sir, or night?"
Mark ordered some of each sent into the air.
In the light of a lowering sun, Mark glanced at the three or four
specially trained loadbeasts accompanying the column, which appeared to be
bearing hooded human riders. Actually the figures on the loadbeasts' backs were
the swathed forms of giant owls, whose heads and shoulders became visible as
the hoods were removed. These birds would presently be launched to scout and
harass the enemy under cover of darkness.
When Mark chose the campsite, Karel and his magical assistants
busied themselves weaving protective spells
around the area. The Prince personally oversaw the
posting of sentries, ate lightly, then entered his small tent. Grimly
impatient for morning, he wrapped himself in a blanket, stretched out on the
ground, two swordbelts beneath him, his body in contact with both of his
sheathed Swords, and tried to get some sleep.
The Prince sometimes tried to calculate whether he had spent more
of his life in the field, in one way or another, than he had under a roof.
Certainly he sometimes felt that way. The familiar sounds of a military
camp—low voices, a fire crackling, someone sharpening a blade—were soothing
rather than disturbing. Yet sleep eluded Mark. His mind could not cease
struggling with plans and calculations.
The ominous signs of Blue Temple presence, and worse, in the land
ahead suggested that one of his chief enemies might well now be in possession
not only of Woundhealer, but of Wayfinder as well. But the Prince could take
comfort in the fact that against the Sword of Force, even the Sword of Wisdom
would be no more useful than a broken dagger. Wayfinder, Mark felt confident,
could never tell its owner how to locate Shieldbreaker or Shieldbreaker's
holder, or how to avoid any danger posed by him.
The Prince shifted position on his blanket, feeling as wide awake
as ever. What would he do if he were Wood?
Of course, Wayfinder would be able to tell its owner the
whereabouts of the magician Karel, say—or the location of the Sword
Sightblinder—and from that information an enemy might well be able to deduce
that Mark was somewhere near. No Sword or combination of Swords could solve all
problems.
Sleep eventually came to Mark, in the form of a troubled doze.
And with sleep came disturbing dreams that
shattered into unrecognizable fragments as soon as he
awoke, leaving a feeling of anxiety.
And one thing more. He had awakened with a new plan.
The Prince conferred with the wizard Karel just before dawn, and
Karel agreed that Mark should ride on, alone but carrying both his Swords,
ahead of the main body of his troops.
The old wizard had some forebodings about what seemed a chancy
scheme, and at first had argued against it. But Mark was impatient, and
stubborn enough to adopt the idea even against Karel's opposition.
At sunrise, as the Prince swallowed hot tea and chewed on a hard
biscuit, preparatory to riding out alone, Karel warned him that carrying
Shieldbreaker and Sightblinder at the same time, even with both Swords
sheathed, could cause him problems.
"I must warn you, Prince, that holding both of these Swords
drawn at the same time may well produce some powerful psychic effect even on
you, who in some ways seemed to possess a curious partial immunity to the
Swords' power."
"I have done as much before."
"Perhaps. But I warn you that your immunity is far from
complete."
"I understand that, Uncle."
"Have you, since leaving home, tried either of the Swords you
carry?"
"Not yet."
"Then do so."
Now, in the relative privacy of his uncle's tent, Prince Mark drew
from its sheath the god-forged blade that rode on his right hip.
Sightblinder, as always, produced some spectacular effects when it
was drawn. Mark was aware of no change in himself. But he knew that in the eyes of his uncle he was
somehow transformed into a figure evoking either terror or adoration. Even the
great magician Karel, here in his own tent, surrounded and supported by all his
powers, and knowing intellectually that the figure he saw was only a phantasm
of magic, was powerless to see the truth behind the image.
"What do you see, Uncle?"
The old man passed a hand across his eyes. "The details of
the deception do not matter. I no longer see you in your true nature, of
course, but an alien image which frightens me, even though I know ..." The
old man, averting his eyes from Mark, made a gesture of dismissal.
Prince Mark sheathed Sightblinder, which he had held in his left
hand, and saw Karel relax somewhat. Next the Prince drew Shieldbreaker. The
Sword of Force was silent, and inert, because no immediate danger threatened.
Mark gripping the black hilt was aware of the vast power waiting there, but he
felt no more than that.
Then, still gripping Shieldbreaker, the Prince pulled the Sword of
Stealth from its sheath once more, and stood holding both Swords at the same
time.
He saw by the change in his uncle's face that his own appearance
had once more altered, perhaps even more terribly than before. The nerves in
Mark's arms and shoulders tingled; the effect was strange, but well within his
range of tolerance.
Carefully Mark sheathed both Swords again, Sight-blinder first.
He tried to reassure Karel, but the old man remained cautious, and
perturbed. He warned the Prince, unnecessarily, not to be caught in combat
with an unarmed foe whilst holding Shieldbreaker.
"I know that," Mark patiently reminded his counselor.
Karel still looked worried.
The Prince, putting a hand on the old wizard's shoulder, reminded
him that he, Mark, was no stranger to the Swords. And he assured the old
man—though not without a certain mental reservation—that the effect of holding
the two Swords at once had not been strong enough to cause him any real
concern.
At the same dawn hour when Mark set out alone from his camp, Ben
was urged out of a light sleep, into instant alertness, by the tug of a
rapier-pointed claw upon his garment.
Crouching over him where he sat with his back against a tree was a
winged messenger from Mark. This helpful, friendly bird, having been instructed
by Karel, brought Ben the welcome news that Tasavaltan troops were not very
many kilometers away, and the Prince himself was even closer.
The birds' sense of horizontal distance was notoriously
inaccurate, so Ben did not derive as much comfort from this news as he
otherwise might have.
As the hours passed, Valdemar continued to observe the destruction
of the personality, even the physical identity, of the sorceress who such a
short time ago had come riding at the head of a force of demons and human thugs
to slaughter her enemies and kidnap him.
Not that Delia appeared to care in the least—she kept humming
little snatches of simple, cheerful songs—but her clothing was now sodden with
rain and getting dirty. Evidently it was now deprived of what Valdemar supposed
must have been the magical protection afforded the garments worn by Tigris. Even
the woman's face was notably changed from that of the conqueror who had
devastated the Blue Temple camp. Valdemar wondered if he could have recognized
this as the same individual, had he not seen with his own eyes the several
stages of the change.
Rain and circumstances seemed to have washed and scoured away an aura of bad
magic, and perhaps some subtle though mundane makeup as well, from her
countenance.
Only the physical parts of the transformation had taken any time
at all. Never, since the thunderbolt fell, had Valdemar caught any hint that
any part of her older, wasted and vicious personality might have survived.
Valdemar had no doubt that the metamorphosis had resulted from a
blow struck at Tigris by the great and mysterious magician she had feared so
terribly, and from whom she had been so desperately trying to escape. One of
the oddest things about the whole situation, as Valdemar saw it, was that the
blow, the sudden transformation, had not really done her any harm. As far as
he could tell, quite the opposite.
And here was another turnaround to consider: He, who had been the
prisoner of Tigris, was now Delia's captor. Or more properly her keeper. Now
he, the simple farmer, had become the worldly, experienced mentor. It was not a
role he relished, but there was no one else to take responsibility for her, and
the idea of simply abandoning her was unacceptable. Though in her previous
persona she had treated him unjustly, still her new helplessness was
disarming. And her new childlike personality was charming in its innocence.
Delia was more talkative than Tigris had been. Almost every time
Valdemar looked at her, he found her gazing back at him as if she sought his
guidance. And she kept asking naive questions.
Earlier, under relentless questioning from this young woman,
Valdemar had tried to explain how he had been guided to her by the Sword of
Wisdom. He thought that Tigris had never quite believed that story; she had
been chronically suspicious, and perhaps incapable of understanding a simple truth.
Now, when he told Delia the same tale, she somehow had no trouble at all
believing if not comprehending what he had done.
"This Sword has brought us together, you and I,"
Valdemar, patting the black hilt, assured his new companion.
"That's good." Her tone suggested complacent acceptance,
if nothing like full understanding.
"It is a magic Sword."
"Magic. Ah." And Delia nodded solemnly, with an appearance
of wisdom.
"Are you acquainted with magic, then?"
"No," she said vaguely. "No, I don't think so. Except—"
"Yes?"
"Except sometimes, when I still lived on the farm, I think .
. . there were things that I could do."
"What kind of things?"
"When plants were sick, sometimes I could make them
well."
"Really? Then I will have to tell you about my vines."
A shadow, as swift as it was insubstantial, abruptly fell over the
two young people.
Simultaneously Valdemar was once more stricken with the helpless
sickness in his guts; this time he recognized the cause, and now his fear was
greater than before.
The presence this time was smaller and more nearly bearable than
Dactylartha's had been. But the young man had no doubt that this sudden
intruder was a demon too.
He clutched for dear life at the Sword of Wisdom, and cried to it
for help. He did his best to lift it, as if to strike a blow.
The demon only chuckled, a truly hideous sound. The ghastly wraith-shape of it
drifted in the air in front of Valdemar.
"What do you mean to do, young man? Strike me with your
Sword?"
"I... " At the moment, brave words seemed impossible to
come by.
"Wayfinder will not protect you . . . nothing will ... if I
simply reach out to you . . . like this ..."
Fear and nausea gripped him, then dragged their slimy presences
away. Val wondered why the demon did not simply seize Wayfinder out of his
almost paralyzed hands. But the shadow drifted on, and the Sword of Wisdom was
still his.
It was, it had to be, only playing with them, like a cat with a
pair of mice.
Delia, utterly miserable, pathetically ignorant, clung to him,
wanting to be comforted.
Val's fears were confirmed. The vile creature had only pretended
to depart, for now it came drifting back. Its vague shape gathered over Delia,
and it whispered something frightful into the young woman's ear.
Shocked, uncomprehending, Delia screamed and wept.
Valdemar tried to summon up his nerve, his will, to rise to her
defense, but physical and mental cramps assailed him, and he fell back
groaning.
Delia shrieked again. Horrible memories had stirred in her when
she heard the demon speak Wood's name.
Then, as unexpectedly as it had come, the demon was gone.
Delia expressed her fear that the Ancient One was coming to get
her. "Val, that's what it meant. That— thing which spoke to me just
now—whatever it was. It told me things that made me start to remember—Val, hold
me!"
And Valdemar, still sick and trembling from the recent presence of a demon, found
himself doing his best to comfort Delia.
He held her while she wept, and promised to protect her—and in his
ignorance he could even believe for a time that he might be able to afford her
such protection.
As for the Ancient One himself, with every passing hour, each
incoming report, he was becoming more firmly convinced of his former
assistant's treachery. Though by this time, as Wood assured himself grimly, the
objective truth concerning her guilt or innocence really no longer mattered.
He had decided to consider her guilty, and that was that.
Whatever she had really done or not done, after this he would
never again be able to trust her even minimally. Too bad; at one time she had
shown great promise . . .
Wood now welcomed back—as warmly as he ever welcomed any
being—the demonic scout who had just tormented Tigris.
Listening attentively, the Ancient One received from this creature
a new report. The news, related with much demonic merriment, was that Tigris
had certainly been reduced to childish helplessness. And now—this was the
crowning effect—seemed to be on her way to a new existence as a farmer's wife.
The Ancient One reacted to this announcement with a great deal of
amusement and satisfaction.
He went so far as to reward the messenger—at least, he promised a
substantial, though unspecified, reward, to be delivered in the future.
The demon praised its master's generosity—its gratitude sounded
as sincere as the virtue that it praised. And it slavishly rejoiced at having
brought good news.
"Yes. Well, well." The human nodded. "All things
considered, such a fate will do quite well as the first phase of our settlement
of accounts with her."
"And the next phase of her punishment, Master?" The
servile creature almost gibbered with delight. "When may we expect to
enjoy that?"
Tersely, in a voice tinged with regret, the Ancient One explained
that for the next few hours or perhaps days he was going to be too busy dealing
with his chief opponents to pay this traitress much attention.
He concluded: "But do keep me informed."
"Most gladly, Master!"
Valdemar still asked the Sword for safety, and the Sword still
required him and Delia to fly. The flights thus commanded were random jaunts,
as far as Val could see, getting them nowhere in particular, but rather keeping
them in the same area of almost uninhabited country, uncomfortably close to the
camp from which Tigris had kidnapped him—how very long ago that seemed!
And Val was growing increasingly worried about the griffin. He
supposed that the creature had grown tired, lacking its proper magical
nourishment, or reinforcement. Or perhaps, thought Valdemar, the beast was simply
becoming increasingly restive in the control and company of these two milksops.
When he asked Delia if she remembered anything about the animal's
diet, she only shuddered and insisted that she knew nothing whatever on the
subject. Valdemar couldn't decide whether she was telling the truth or not.
When he asked the Sword for help in feeding their chief means of
transportation, Wayfinder obliged. Evidently there was some kind of food the
griffin favored, and when Valdemar turned to the Sword for help, Wayfinder
directed them to a landing place where the creature browsed contentedly for a
time, burrowing its head into the dense foliage of a grove of peculiar trees.
Valdemar was unable to tell at first glance whether the beast was eating
leaves, fruit, or perhaps something more meaty that dwelled in the high branches; he made
no effort to find out.
"Is it a very big magic, then?" The young blond woman
was staring gravely, wide-eyed, alternately at Valdemar, and at the Sword he
was consulting with regard to their next move.
He was disconcerted by the way she put a thumb or knuckle in her
mouth, her pink lips sucking at it.
Also he wanted to tell her that her garments needed some
adjustment. He was more certain than ever that in her previous persona her
clothing must have been protected by some magical means. Now this enhancement
was no more, and seams and fabric, not made to withstand rough usage without
help, here and there starting to give way. Her blouse, or tunic, or whatever
the right name was for the upper garment she was wearing, was tending to come
open in front. Matters were tending toward the immodest. How could he think of
her as a potential bride?
Valdemar told himself that he was not really accustomed to
dealing with children.
He said: "Of course this Sword is magic, magic of tremendous
power. Haven't I just been telling you?"
The griffin was showing signs of reasonable contentment as it
continued feeding. Valdemar assumed that he and Delia would soon be riding on
the monster's back again. He wondered if some curse was on him too, that
circumstances kept arising to delay his return home.
Of course, once he had reached that goal, another problem would
arise: What ought he to do then with the Sword? Any such treasure would
inevitably draw trouble, as Valdemar saw the situation. He would have to hide
it, get rid of it, trade it off somehow as soon as an opportunity arose.
But that could wait until he was safely home. Once Wayfinder had
seen him that far, Valdemar was sure he wanted nothing more to do with any magic of the gods.
As for his wife . . . whoever she might be ...
He sat looking long and soberly at Delia.
"What am I to do with you, girl, when we've got that far? I
don't know. Will you at least be safe from demons when we've reached that
point?"
She could no more answer that question than an infant. She looked
back at her caretaker with mild concern, waiting for him to find some
reassuring answer.
"At least," Valdemar growled, "I'll know where I am
then, and I'll be able to do something ..."
He picked up the Sword and once more asked it to show him the way
home.
THE Sword of Wisdom failed to respond at all to this important
question, or to the others Valdemar asked. Valdemar took this to mean that he
too should adopt a course of inactivity. That would be all right if it didn't
last too long; he could use the rest. Anyway, the griffin had not yet finished
its protracted feeding.
Also Val was still being bothered by his cut fingers. The skin
around the little wounds was red and sore and even felt warmer than the
adjacent flesh, as if he were getting a local fever. Healing was slow, not
helped by the fact that he had to keep using his hand.
Delia, despite her claim to have spent her childhood on a farm,
protested that it bothered her to have to deal with blood and injury. But when
Valdemar coaxed her, she agreed to do what she could to help him.
First, wearing an absentminded look, she searched among the nearby
bushes and eventually came up with what she said were useful herbs, varieties
to help the small wounds heal.
While engaged in this search, she took tune out to complain, she
had not been able to find the kind of berries she would really like to eat.
"There should be little red berries, in the spring ..."
"I suppose your farm was a long way off from here."
"I suppose it was," the young woman answered vaguely.
Then she lifted her head sharply. "Listen!"
"What?" Valdemar turned uneasily, hand groping for his
Sword.
"The birds. Hear them? Except they're not the same kind that
used to sing on the farm."
Eventually, with Delia's assistance, Val succeeded in getting an
effective bandage on his hand. The poultice of leaves that she bound on stung a
little at first, but then felt vaguely comforting.
As Delia finished tying the last knot in the little bandage, he
continued to stare at her thoughtfully. Long ago Valdemar had abandoned the
last suspicion that this shocking innocence was some kind of a trick, a pose on
her part. And she showed no signs of snapping out of it. No, it seemed that she
was his responsibility now.
So far the pair of them had had enough to eat; fortunately the
griffin had been carrying some field rations, mostly hard bread and cheese, in
one of its panniers. But those supplies were quickly running out, and Valdemar
realized that to keep himself and his supposed bride going he was going to have
to somehow scrounge more nourishment from other sources.
He would have to think seriously about that problem soon. At the
moment he was very tired.
The Sword of Wisdom would of course lead them to good things to
eat, as soon as he wanted to make that his priority. But Valdemar had the
feeling that they were under pursuit, if not direct attack, and he had learned
that the Sword could only handle one question—or one main goal—at a time. He
would not risk his life and Delia's for food until actual starvation
threatened.
Sitting against a tree, he was pulled back from the brink of sleep
by his companion leaning over him.
"Is it a very big magic?" Delia now repeated, innocently. She was gazing
thoughtfully at the Sword, which lay in Valdemar's lap, his hand on the black
hilt.
Earlier, Valdemar remembered with a sense of irony, this woman—or
rather this woman's other self—had been the one to accuse him of feigning an
innocence too great for the real world.
"It is indeed," Valdemar replied at last, with the slow
patience of near exhaustion. "It is a gigantic, tremendous magic. And also
very sharp—be careful!" He had thought for a moment, from the eager way
his charge was leaning forward, that she had been about to run a testing finger
right along the edge of Wayfinder's Blade.
She who had once been Tigris had never objected to Valdemar's
having complete charge of the Sword of Wisdom. But from the way she was gazing
at the weapon now, it was obvious that something—whether it was the bright
beauty, the supernal keenness, or the intricate under-the-surface pattern of
the steel—held a strong fascination.
He slid Wayfinder back into the sheath still fastened at his
waist.
And then he leaned back against the tree. His eyelids were getting
very heavy, and he would rest for just a moment.
Delia, feeling a mixture of mischief and curiosity, reached for
the Sword again as soon as Val, losing his battle to exhaustion, dozed off.
And at that moment the griffin, as if sensing that something of
importance was about to happen, silently turned its head, watching Delia keenly
as she reached for Wayfinder.
She could not test the sharpness of the edge while the Sword
remained sheathed. Softly she put her hand on the black hilt and drew the
weapon forth, so quietly that Valdemar slept on.
Holding the Sword with a double grip on the sturdy hilt, made
Delia feel strange. Her arms and hands were going tingly in a way that she
knew—somehow—had something to do with magic. The sensation made her forget
about testing the physical edge. She held up the Sword to smile at it in
innocent admiration.
Val had told her that the Sword answered questions, and helped
people. "What should I ask?" she whispered aloud. The question seemed
addressed more to herself than to the instrument of the gods.
The griffin, at the moment chewing its mysterious nourishment,
chewing with the jaw-motions of a cow, and the fangs of a gigantic lion, had no
answer for her.
Warily Delia turned her head, looking carefully at Valdemar to
make sure that he was still asleep.
Then inspiration came. Small hands white-knuckled with the strain
of gripping the black hilt, she raised the heavy Sword of Wisdom and whispered
to it again.
"Show me the way to make him want to keep me with him,"
she whispered devoutly. And smiled a moment later—because sure enough,
Wayfinder had just twisted slightly in her hands—pointing at what?
At nothing in particular, that she could see. Just at some bushes.
Moving eagerly and quietly, holding the heavy Blade extended
carefully in front of her, Delia investigated. The Sword led her through a
screen of brush, and on a few meters more, to a point where she heard the
sounds of murmuring water just ahead.
Still following the Sword's guidance, she soon arrived at a small
stream, partially dammed by a fallen tree and lodged debris. Above the dam a
pleasant little pond had formed, partially shaded by standing trees. The day
was warm and sunny for a change, and the pool invited her to test it with her
fingers. Not prohibitively cold. Certainly it looked deep and clear enough to
provide a bath.
Sniffing fastidiously at her armpits, she grimaced, and could not
remember ever before being this dirty.
What had awakened Valdemar he did not know, but full consciousness
suddenly returned. Sitting up straight, with a reflexive wrench of all his
muscles, he felt a cold hand at his heart when he saw that the Sword of Wisdom
was no longer in its sheath, which was still belted securely at his waist.
Delia was missing too. Maybe she had only stepped into the bushes
to relieve herself. Jumping to his feet, Val called her name, first softly and
then at considerable volume. To his vast relief, an answer came drifting from
somewhere in the middle distance. A moment later, he thought he could hear
prolonged splashing.
Quickly the young man pushed his way through the bushes to
investigate.
He stopped abruptly as soon as the pond came into view. The Sword
at least was safe, stuck casually into the moist earth at the water's edge.
Delia's clothing, including an undergarment or two which Valdemar
had never seen before, lay beside the upright Blade. The young woman herself,
completely unclothed above the waist, covered by water below that, waved at
Valdemar from midstream, no more than an easy leap away. She called cheerfully
for him to join her in her bath.
"Val, come in, come in!"
"I'm coming!" he heard himself reply. His voice was a
mere croak. Already he was striding forward, as if hypnotized. Somehow it was
as if he were watching his own behavior from outside. He was aware of stripping
off his own garments, and stepping down into the current . . .
Half an hour later, Delia, still unclothed, lying at ease amid the
spring grass and early flowers a little inland from the water's edge, was frowning
prettily. She had hold of the huge hand of Valdemar, who, as naked as she was,
lay almost inert beside her, and was turning it this way and that, as if
interested in the articulation of the wrist.
"And now your bandage has come off again," she was
complaining. "What are we to do for your poor fingers?"
"Never mind my fingers." Valdemar's voice had a newly
calm and thoughtful quality.
Something crackled in the brush nearby, galvanizing him into
action, first lunging, then crawling awkwardly, to reach the Sword. With his
bandaged hand on the black hilt he turned—to find himself facing nothing worse
than the griffin, driven by curiosity to see what its two masters were about.
Delia, who had crawled after him, started tickling him playfully.
Another half hour had passed before Delia asked Valdemar whether
the magic Sword could heal his ringers.
"No, there is another Sword, called Woundhealer, that would
be needed to do that."
"Woundhealer? Where is it?"
"I don't know. It was with me for a while, before I met
you—or rather I was with some people who were carrying that Sword. But where
it is now . . . just help me put on a bandage again. My fingers will be all
right, and we face bigger problems than a couple of little wounds."
The bandaging went more easily this time, perhaps because Delia
was less afraid of hurting him.
As she tied the last knot, Val said regretfully: "Better get
dressed. We must be moving on."
The griffin appeared to be through feeding, for the time being
anyway. But Val's renewed questioning of the Sword, with safety as his goal,
this time elicited no clear indication from Wayfinder.
Valdemar, strolling about with his arm around Delia, bending now
and then to kiss her, kept trying to picture her as his wife, working beside
him in the vineyard. Yesterday such a vision would have seemed impossible. Now
it was much clearer.
He began to talk to her about his vines and grapes, and about the
good wine that could be made from them in a year or two when the plants were
fully matured.
Delia, listening to Val's description of his work, and his plans
for the future, saw nothing frightening or unpleasant in the prospect. In fact
she found herself quite pleased.
His description of the vineyard stumbled to a halt. "Does
this suit you, then?" he asked.
"Yes," she told him simply. "All I want now, Val,
is to stay with you."
"Oh. Oh, my dear. Delia."
When the pair of them were busy gathering what food they could,
foraging to augment the supplies still remaining from the griffin's
fast-diminishing store, she demonstrated a definite magical affinity for
growing things—making thorny vines bend to and fro, to yield her their juicy
berries without pricking her reaching hands and arms.
"I foresee a great future for you in the country, little
woman."
"I keep telling you, I have always lived on a farm."
"And do your parents live there still?"
"I'm not sure." A shadow crossed the young woman's face.
"I don't want to think about them."
"Then don't."
Once more Delia, at a moment when her companion was inattentive,
got her small hands—hands no longer as pale and soft as they had been—on the
weapon of the gods. In simple words she whispered a new question to the Sword
of Wisdom, asking it to guide them to the Sword called Woundhealer, so that her
lover's cut fingers could be healed.
Yet again they mounted the griffin. Valdemar, thinking that his
own most recent query was the one to which the Sword was now actively
responding, gave the beast commands. Quickly they were airborne.
They had not flown far before the young man noticed that a flying
reptile was following them. He could not be sure whether it was actually trying
to catch up with them or not, but the griffin was flying so slowly that that
seemed a possibility.
Grimly Valdemar urged their mount to greater speed. The nightmare
head turned on the long neck. The eyes, seeming to glow with their own fire,
looked straight at him. But the griffin ignored the command.
"Faster, I said!" Val waved the Sword, as if threatening
the beast with it.
The threat was a bluff, and it proved a serious mistake.
With a move that appeared deliberate for all its speed, the beast
reached up, with an impossible-looking extension of one of its almost leonine
hind legs. The blow from the great claws caught Wayfinder cunningly, knocking
the Sword of Wisdom neatly out of Valdemar's hand.
Val uttered a hoarse cry of surprise and dismay. There was no use
trying to grab for the Sword, it was already gone. In the next moment he saw
the pursuing reptile catch the falling treasure in mid-flight, and with the
gleaming blade between serrated teeth, go wheeling away on swift wings,
carrying the prize.
At the moment of the Sword's fall, as if a successful and unpunished act of
rebellion had given it courage, the griffin became totally unmanageable.
Skimming low over forest and wasteland, it launched into a series
of acrobatic moves, as if determined to dislodge at once its two uncongenial
masters from its back. Val and Delia hung on all but helpless, shouting at the
creature and at each other. Sky, wasteland, and patches of forest spun round
them as the griffin looped. The couple clung desperately to saddle and basket.
Suddenly a blue-white wall of water loomed, a pond or miniature
lake. Hardly had the body of water come into sight, when the crazed animal
plunged straight into it, diving and swimming like a loon.
The water's liquid resistance finally dislodged the humans.
Valdemar, choking, almost drowning, felt a piece of basket rim break off in his
hand. Swimming in water over his head, he fought his way to the surface, just
in time to see his escaped means of transportation floundering ashore. From
the wooded shoreline the griffin leapt into the air again, displaying magical
celerity.
Where was Delia?
Treading water, turning this way and that, Val hoarsely called her
name.
A long moment passed before he saw her—floating face down.
Desperately he stroked to reach her, got the muddy bottom of the
pond under his boots, and carried her ashore. By that time, to his great
relief, she was coughing and moaning feebly. She spat out a mouthful of muddy
water.
When he would have helped Delia to sit up on the bank, she cried
out in pain. Her back had been somehow injured in the watery rough landing. She
protested that she could not walk, could hardly move.
Standing now on the shoreline, with a chance to look around,
Valdemar thought that this territory looked
vaguely familiar. As far as he could tell, they had
returned to a point at no very great distance from the place where a young
woman named Tigris had kidnapped him, and their adventures with the griffin had
begun.
The scouting reptiles informed the Ancient One that Tigris was not
very many kilometers away.
A beastmaster relayed the information. "She is in worse shape
than ever, Lord! The peasant who is traveling as her companion strips off her
clothing, and uses her at will."
Wood chuckled. For the moment he continued to be satisfied with
the progress of his punishment.
"And we have taken their Sword from them!" the reporting
human gloated.
The Ancient One's demeanor changed. "I hope that none among
you has dared to touch it?"
Hastily the subordinate explained. No one had disobeyed orders.
One of the more simple-minded flying reptiles had caught the falling Sword
Wayfinder in midair, and was bringing it in, flying slowly under the unaccustomed
load.
Wood was not really surprised by the news regarding the Sword. He
had been working for some time, and on several levels, to get Wayfinder away
from Tigris and Valdemar, and into his own hands.
It had been part of his plan to obtain the Sword without letting
any of his associates possessed of human intelligence, or greater, get it into
their own hands even for an instant.
The task had been further complicated by the fact that Wayfinder
itself had doubtless been employed to protect its possessors from him. But as
matters had turned out, his plan succeeded anyway. Perhaps, he was tempted to
believe, the Swords' magic was not invariably supreme.
Soon the Sword itself was brought in. But, almost immediately after getting
Wayfinder into his hands, Wood was distracted again from thoughts of pleasant
vengeance by reports from both demons and reptiles, confirming that a force of
about a hundred Tasavaltan riders was on its way south, heading almost directly
toward his camp.
On hearing this, one of the Ancient One's currently most favored
human subordinates immediately suggested evoking a large force of demons, and
dispatching them all against the hundred cavalry and their support people and
creatures.
The proposed tactic would undoubtedly serve well to determine
whether Mark was accompanying this main Tasavaltan force or not. But if Mark
was indeed there, the discovery might cost the discoverer, Wood, a whole force
of demons.
He decided prudently to begin by sending only one or two of the
vile creatures.
As for attacking Mark personally, he had other ideas about that.
Having been aware for some years of the presence of Shieldbreaker
in the Tasavaltan arsenal, Wood assumed that the Prince would be coming against
him armed with the Sword of Force. Shieldbreaker was undoubtedly the mightiest
piece of armament in the world, capable of nullifying the power of any other
weapon, even another Sword, that might be deployed against it.
With these facts in mind the Ancient One, pleased as he was to be
finally holding Wayfinder, took it for granted from the start that any attempt
to locate Mark directly by using the Sword of Wisdom was bound to fail.
So Wood, on first obtaining the Sword of Wisdom, made only a
perfunctory attempt to locate Mark. When that was unsuccessful, he acted rather
to locate the wizard Karel, or the Sword Sightblinder, on the assumption that Mark would be found
very near that person or object.
When the Ancient One's small squad of demonic skirmishers
attempted to strike at the force from Tasavalta, they would encounter, in fat
old Karel, a magician of sufficient stature to beat the attackers off—though
not as quickly and effectively as Mark would have been able to repel them.
In Karel's archives, as he was soon explaining to an anxious pair
of military officers in his tent, were listed the locations of many demons'
lives. And the old magician gave assurance that he knew how to find out more
such locations very quickly, if and when the need arose.
Besides, Karel had the power to make things unpleasant for a lot
of demons whose lives he lacked the knowledge to terminate—so unpleasant that
they would even prefer to incur Wood's displeasure, rather than persist in this
attack.
Wood, observing the fate of his demon skirmishers as closely as he
could while still remaining at what he considered the best distance to
exercise command, felt reasonably confident that Mark was no longer
accompanying his cavalry and his chief magician.
Then where was the Prince of Tasavalta? Mark's archenemy chewed a
fingernail, heretofore well-kept, and pondered.
Wherever the Prince might be, Wood felt sure that he would be
armed not only with the Sword of Force, but also with the Sword of Stealth.
Such a combination would make a formidable antagonist out of the veriest
weakling; in the hands of a warrior like Mark, the effect was bound to be
overwhelming, against all but the strongest and most crafty defense.
Well, Wood considered that he was ready.
In less than a minute, before Wood's demons could begin their
serious attack, even before most of the Tasavaltan force had been made aware of
the impending threat, Karel's magic had slain or dispersed the handful of
magical skirmishers.
But the confrontation, once begun, continued between Mark's uncle
and the Ancient One. The two commenced sparring at long range.
Wood had long wanted to test directly the occult strength of
Kristin's overweight uncle. Now, having at last made immediate contact, the
Ancient One had grudgingly to admit that, although he felt confident of being
able to wear this veteran adversary down in time, the struggle was bound to be
a long and draining one. Wood did not choose to spare the time and effort to
fight it to a conclusion now. He was going to need all his powers to deal with
Mark, armed as the Prince must now be.
Not that Wood thought Mark was going to represent the ultimate
test. The Ancient One had received certain magical indications that his own
final success or failure, in his bid to dominate the world, was going to depend
upon another confrontation, now still relatively remote.
Against the Dark King, and the horde of demons that one could call
up? Wood considered it unlikely that his rival Vilkata had really been
permanently removed from the scene. But no, not even the Dark King would represent
the ultimate challenge.
Sooner or later, the Ancient One was thinking now, it would be
necessary to concentrate his efforts with the Sword of Wisdom on locating the
Emperor, in anticipation of a final combat with that man.
The Lady Yambu, lying on an ebon couch, covered with a white
sheet, her head now pillowed on rich fabrics, was being more or less forcibly
maintained by her newest captor in a state of responsive consciousness. Finding it
necessary to converse with him whether she wanted to or not, she expressed to
Wood her surprise that his first questions to the Sword of Wisdom did not seem
to have been concerned with establishing his own safety.
She asked him the reasons for this lack of caution.
He assured the Silver Queen that he scorned to be so timid.
"You will understand that, I am sure, my lady. You yourself
have never been accused of excessive caution."
"No doubt that is intended as a compliment."
"Of course. I have always regarded you with the greatest
respect." Wood paused, before adding in a low, convincing voice: "I
would never have deserted you in your time of need."
"Meaning that the Emperor, who was my husband, did?"
"You are the best judge of his behavior in that instance."
Without hesitating, the Ancient One continued: "Support me now, and I will
give you real youth. Eternal youth and beauty, a far more lasting change than
even Woundhealer will ever be able to provide."
Her head turned on the brocaded pillow. "And Tigris? Did she
have the same promise from you?"
"What has happened, is happening, to that woman is no secret.
But dear lady, I made her no promises. I never found that woman half as
interesting as I find you."
"I have no interest in what is happening to her. Now will you
let me rest?"
"Of course, dear lady. For a time."
Walking alone, a few moments later, Wood developed a shrewd
suspicion: this lady was really trying to find, to rejoin, her former husband.
Though he thought it doubtful that the Silver Queen herself was fully aware of
her own motivation.
Perhaps he, Wood, ought to announce his readiness to help her in
this quest.
Because he really wanted to find the Emperor too.
On an impulse drawing Wayfinder, Wood took time out from his
immediate struggle to command that Sword to guide him to the Great Clown.
The Sword's reaction was simply to point straight down to the spot
of earth on which Wood was standing. He could readily find one interpretation
of this answer: If he remained where he was, the Emperor would come to him.
Of course there were other possibilities.
"Am I to dig into the earth? I hope not. Or do you simply
mean that I must wait? Faugh! The secrets of the gods are welded into this bar
of metal, and all I can do is ask questions like any other supplicant, and
hope, and wait!"
Faced with this behavior by the Sword of Wisdom, the Ancient One
began to wonder if his calculations regarding Mark's behavior could have been
wrong.
He wondered also whether it might be the Emperor, instead of Mark,
who was now armed with Shield-breaker.
When Wood tried to locate Mark directly, Wayfinder became as inert
as any farmer's knife.
Wood, who had also taken possession of Woundhealer on entering the
camp, was considering that he might eventually want to trade that treasure for
a Sword he wanted more—though he would dislike having to give up the Sword of
Healing, having certain uses for it in mind.
He thought that the next time he talked with Yambu, he would
elicit some comment from her on the subject of trading Woundhealer.
MARK in a grim mood kept riding forward. The country through which
he traveled was largely desert, and for a time remained almost flat. The land
got rougher as he drew closer to a river's rocky gorge.
He had now been traveling alone, ahead of the advancing column of
Tasavaltan cavalry, for more than a full day.
The Prince had had no conscious contact with anyone, friend or
foe, since he had separated from his hundred picked troopers, from Karel, the
assistant magicians, and the rest of the fast-moving force.
On parting from his friends, Mark had ridden for a short time
without drawing either Sightblinder or Shield-breaker. But rather soon the
Prince decided that he had better not advance any farther without having in
hand one of his two Swords—or, better, both of them.
Mark wanted to have the Sword of Stealth in hand before he was
seen by the enemy's reptile scouts.
And he wanted to draw Shieldbreaker before coming within range of
any enemy weapons.
Since leaving Karel behind, the Prince had several times sensed
the power of contending magical forces, and he realized that something might be
happening to delay his uncle and the cavalry. But even with Sightblinder in hand to enhance his powers
of observation, he had been unable to perceive the details of the magical
combat between Karel and Wood, or of Karel and Wood's demons.
Mark supposed that, barring such magical hindrance, his Tasavaltan
escort ought to be not much more than a couple of hours behind him.
Carrying Sightblinder drawn for protection deprived Mark of
information he might otherwise have received from scouting birds and made him
unable to send winged couriers to his friends. Confronted by magic powerful
enough to deceive humans, the birds, with their limited intelligence, could
hardly be expected to disregard the visual image—they would either perceive
Mark as some fearful presence, and refuse to approach him, or they would see
him as some beloved object—another bird, he supposed, or a favorite handler—not
the two-legged master for whom they had been trained to carry messages and
fight.
Thus on occasion, when he saw a friendly messenger in the air,
Mark risked sheathing Sightblinder again.
Under these conditions, the Prince had received indications that
Wood himself was now somewhere in this general area. The most recent of these
communications was a note from Ben, explaining that the Blue Temple force had
been destroyed, and its camp taken over by an expedition under the command of
Tigris.
Mark observed several flying reptiles at irregular intervals of
time. Their paths in the sky converged at a place no very great distance ahead
of him. This fact warned the Prince that he was almost certainly closely
approaching some enemy; from this point on he rode with the two Swords
continually drawn.
And now the subtle blending of their two powerful magics,
Shieldbreaker in his right hand, Sightblinder in his left, both Swords more
fully activated than when he had tried them in Karel's presence, gave Mark strange,
exotic feelings of power and glory. Wave after wave of giddiness threatened to
unbalance him in his saddle. His uncle's warnings clamored in his memory, but
Mark forcibly put them from his mind—just now, both of his Swords were
necessary.
Old Karel had more than once cautioned him that these, like other
forms of power, could be addictive. Not that Mark had needed the warning; he
had long been old enough to understand that for himself.
The Prince retained a firm faith that Shieldbreaker's protection
would hold absolutely against any spells or other attacks that Wood might
launch personally, or might order to be made by others.
As Mark grew closer to the enemy, the powers slumbering in the
Sword of Force awoke and made a tapping sound. He knew that this noise signaled
a hostile presence, somewhere close enough to represent an immediate danger.
Now and again, as Mark moved forward, the dull sound arose, only
to sink back almost to inaudibility. In the circumstances, knowing the power of
this Sword, the Prince found the faint noise more comforting than alarming.
As when the duel commenced between Karel and Wood, Mark's
experienced senses provided him with a vague but disturbing warning of evil
magic, strange presences, nearby. He could feel these groping in the air
around him, and then withdrawing thwarted.
Wood, on taking over the camp established by Tigris, had quickly
reorganized its layout and defenses.
The Ancient One now occupied a blue and silver pavilion in the
center of an elaborate and heavily safeguarded bivouac.
The powers, human and inhuman, who had come here with the treacherous young
enchantress had all by now been formally charged with incompetence or worse.
Every one of them had now been taken away in chains, or the magical equivalent
thereof.
Having, as he thought, magical capabilities to spare, and no real
concern for problems of logistics, the Ancient One had also set out to make
this facility luxurious.
In the few moments he thought he could spare from more immediate
concerns, he studied the condition of his prisoner Yambu, and talked with her
on several subjects.
The Ancient One, with the help of several subordinates, was also
conducting, or preparing to conduct, experiments with some new magical
techniques. He nursed at least feeble hopes that these would enable him to get
around the defense posed by the Sword of Force.
But it did not take long to confirm his most gloomy auguries
regarding the new methods. These were doomed to fail as absolutely as any other
inferior magic ever set in opposition to a Sword.
He was angry, but he had really expected no other result.
"It is no use," he admitted, his voice descending to a
quiet rasp of rage. "Shieldbreaker's protection remains absolute."
These new techniques had required some human sacrifice, and the
Director had been chosen. The Lady Yambu had asked whether she was being
considered as a candidate, and Wood had looked pained at the suggestion.
The Ancient One did truly regret that Tigris was not currently
available in his camp, so that she could do him a final service as the
sacrifice.
It would be hard, he thought, to imagine anything more
satisfactory than watching her be fed slowly to a demon—unless of course he
should manage to lay his hands on Woundhealer and Tigris together. Then new
possibilities would open. He would be able to treat her, after all, to that little
vacation in one of his remote strongholds for which she had once so eagerly
expressed a wish . . .
Yes, Wood already missed his little comrade, and he was going to
miss her more. Oh, if only she had remained loyal to him a little longer! It
was unsatisfying to have the decision on when to end a relationship taken out
of one's hands, so to speak.
Wood talked with Brod, and in the course of this discussion he
formally enlisted the Sarge as one of his followers.
Brod groveled in gratitude.
"You may demonstrate your thankfulness by performing a
certain mission for me. Do this job well, and I will give you something more
important."
"Anything my Master commands!"
"I want you to seek out a certain woman—you will be given her
approximate location, and magical means by which you will be able to certainly
identify her—and bring her back here, to me, for my personal attention. You
need not be too concerned about her sensibilities while she is in your
charge."
"I take your meaning, Master."
"I think I made it plain enough."
Ben, forced to seek shelter almost continually, had been able to
make little or no progress to the north. But he kept trying.
On rounding a bend in a path that wound its way through scrubby
forest, he suddenly came upon a vision that stopped him in his tracks—he was
confronting a young woman, tall and strong, with clear blue eyes and bright red
hair, who stood regarding him steadily.
It was Ariane, his long-lost love.
Intellectually, Ben knew better. He realized almost at once that he had really
encountered Mark, carrying the Sword Sightblinder, so that the Prince must
appear to his old friend, as to anyone else he met, as some object of
overwhelming love or fear.
Knowing well the powers of Sightblinder, and also that Mark would
almost certainly have armed himself with the Sword of Stealth, Ben had braced
himself mentally for such a moment. Still the shock was almost overwhelming.
Mark, on seeing his friend turn pale, and sit down as if his knees
had betrayed him, sheathed Sightblinder, and advanced to offer words of
greeting and reassurance.
In a minute Ben had pulled himself together, had given Mark the
bad news about the loss of Zoltan and the Sword of Healing, and was ready for
whatever had to be done next.
The Prince took a turn at walking, loaning weary Ben his
riding-beast for an hour or two. In this manner the pair headed south again.
Mark told Ben that he had been for some time reasonably certain that an enemy
camp was not far, because he had observed the converging reptile flight-paths.
Ben confirmed that his, the lost Sword of Healing had been carried
that way too.
At dusk, advancing cautiously, the two men observed sparks of
firelight ahead, suggesting the presence of a camp.
Taking counsel together, the two experienced warriors decided
that, armed as they were with Swords, they stood an excellent chance of being
able to launch a successful raid without waiting for the arrival of the
Tasavaltan troop and Karel.
Mark emphasized: "If Wood is indeed in this camp, I want to get my hands on him
before he has a chance to fly off with the Sword I need."
Ben raised a hand to silence him.
Someone was approaching.
Valdemar had been forced to leave the injured Delia in an
abandoned hut, which at least offered shelter against the intermittent cold
rain, while he sought help.
Even in the gathering dusk, he quickly recognized Ben's hulking
figure.
But standing beside Ben ... in that first moment . . . was an
almost-forgotten horror out of Valdemar's own childhood, a faceless figure of
which he could be certain only that it was frightful.
And in the next moment, even as he recoiled in horror, the young
giant beheld the image of horror replaced by one of his beautiful wife to be
... and then that form faded too. Beside Ben there was only a tall man, sheathing
what appeared to be a Sword.
In a few moments introductions had been made, and explanations
begun. From Valdemar Mark soon heard, in a drastically condensed version, the
story of how the woman who had been Tigris was now lying in an abandoned hut,
reformed and injured, in dire need of help.
Valdemar in the course of this relation reported how Tigris had
abducted him from this site, and mentioned the loss of Wayfinder.
Ben expressed his doubts. "You think she's reformed, young
one? Maybe her magic's been taken away, but I'll shed no tears for that. It's
some kind of trickery she's worked upon you."
"It's not!"
Quickly and firmly the Prince squelched this argument. There was
no time for quarreling now. Even if the situation was in fact just as Valdemar
described it, he, Mark, could not, would not, go off on a tangent now to help some woman in distress,
however deserving she might be.
And then the Prince made a plea of his own. "Help me now,
Valdemar. Help Ben to guard me against attackers when we invade this camp, and
I swear that I in turn will help you as soon as I can. With all the power of
Tasavalta, and of the Swords, that I can bring to bear."
The towering youth let out a sound of frustration, something
between a sigh and a snort. "I must accept your offer, Prince. It seems I
have no choice."
Mark decided that they would not attack the camp till dawn, giving
them all a chance to eat and rest. He shared out the food from his saddlebags.
Before bedding down for the night, Mark and Ben discussed tactics with the
inexperienced Valdemar. The two veterans made the point that the only enemy
tactic they really had to worry about, whatever forces might oppose them here,
was that of people deliberately disarming themselves and then hurling
themselves on the Prince who carried Shield-breaker.
Valdemar nodded; the theory of the situation was easy enough to
comprehend. As for putting it into practice: "I will do the best I
can."
"Can't ask for any more than that."
In the first gray light of dawn, the three men soon came close
enough to Wood's encampment to hear the sounds of people stirring, and smell
the smoke of campfires.
Evidently the Ancient One, confident in his strength, had made no
particular effort to conceal his position.
Mark, made wary by this lack of concealment, wondered whether
Wood was more or less expecting him, perhaps even trying to lure him into
making a solo attack.
It turned out that Wood's camp was magically protected against
casual discovery, but with Shieldbreaker in one hand and Sightblinder in the
other the Prince crossed the invisible boundary unharmed and unimpeded. Had it not
been for a softly augmented thudding from the Sword of Force, he would not even
have realized that he had encountered any defenses.
Matters were different for the two men who formed his escort. Ben,
despite his experience and alertness, was unaware of the magical protection
until unnatural light flared around him and Valdemar, and immaterial weapons
slashed at their minds and bodies.
Shields and snares of magic closed on the three intruders, only
to recoil an instant later like snapped bowstrings, broken by the unyielding
central presence of the Sword of Force. Shieldbreaker's voice beat loudly,
light flared across the early morning dimness, and the claws of magic lashing
out at it were instantly blunted and beaten back. Valdemar and Ben were
staggered momentarily, but the power that might otherwise have destroyed them
was quenched before it could have serious effect.
Hoarse cries in human voices went up from near the center of the
camp. Ben thought that perhaps the backlash of the broken spells had taken
toll among the minor wizards there. Certainly by now the entire enemy camp was
aware of an intrusion. Soldiers in blue and silver, magicians, and others came
pouring out of their tents. The trio of invaders stood in plain sight of most
of them, and Sightblinder immediately provoked primary confusion among the
defenders, human and inhuman.
The first human sentry to get a clear look at Mark, near the edge
of camp, ran forward hesitantly, sword half-raised by an arm that jerked
uncertainly, as if the man himself did not know whether he meant to salute or
strike. Evidently this man perceived the invading Prince as Wood himself, or as
some hideous demonic power.
An instant later, a real demon came hurtling down out of the
lowering morning sky. Even had Mark been lacking Shieldbreaker, he would have
confronted the foul thing with a wary respect, but not with terror. As the
Emperor's son, he had always possessed the power, without understanding why or
how he had it, to drive away even the most powerful of those evil creatures,
simply by commanding them to depart. In the past the Prince had been forced to
demonstrate this ability several times, often enough to give him confidence in
it now.
And the Sword of Force, he felt sure, added another impenetrable
layer of protection against demons. Such beings, as old Karel had once
explained to Mark, were creatures of magic and pure malevolence, born of great
explosions at the time of the Old World's dying. They could will nothing but
evil, and Karel thought that they could take no action of any kind except by
means of magic.
Magic employed to inflict injury was by definition a weapon, and
Shieldbreaker was proof against all weapons, material or otherwise. A human
being abandoning all weapons could win barehanded against the Sword of
Force—but a demon could hardly disarm itself without ceasing to exist.
Perhaps, Sightblinder notwithstanding, this morning's demon
understood at once just what antagonist it must be facing. Because the thing
vanished out of the air again, as quickly as it had appeared, and of its own
volition.
And now—inevitably but foolishly—a few material weapons were
deployed directly against the holder of the Sword of Force. Mark's body, no
longer under full control of his own will, stretched back and forth with magical
celerity, darted to right and left, executing parry, cut, and thrust with
ruinous violence and precision—but all under cover of Sightblinder's cloak of
deception. The visible counterfeit of Mark—some image of terror or love—beheld
by each friend or enemy, more often than not appeared weaponless and unmoving,
a single enigmatic
figure standing immobile in the midst of causeless carnage.
Enemy swords, spears, missiles and shields were hacked and
harvested in a spray of fragments. Shieldbreaker chopped up human flesh and
body armor with ruthlessly complete indifference. The Sword in Mark's right
hand—in those moments when that weapon could be glimpsed—became a silver blur.
The hammer-sound blurred also with its speed, and swelled up to a steady
thunder-roll.
Valdemar had never seen or dreamed of anything like this before.
Few people had. There was, there could be, in the whole world nothing else like
this to see. The young man was momentarily stunned into immobility.
One man, Mark, advancing with his weapons, sent the first wave of
blue and silver opposition reeling back in confusion.
So far the Prince's double bodyguard had not been required to do
anything but stay close to him. If they stayed close enough, they remained
within the aegis of protection of the Sword of Force. Shieldbreaker flashed
invisibly between their bodies and around them, smashing slung stones and
arrows out of the air.
But now, sooner than either Val or Ben had expected, some of the
enemy began to come against Mark unarmed.
Val saw the first one, a squat, strong soldier in silver and blue,
come charging barehanded between two of his fellows armed with short spears.
The Sword of Force put out its flickering tongue of power, and both spearshafts
were severed in a blink. The unarmed enemy who would have charged between the
spears to grapple with the Prince instead encountered the battle-hatchet swung
accurately at the end of Val's long right arm. The vineyardist had never
killed before; but he was left with no time
now to meditate upon the fact. Another unarmed foe
was coming.
Ben and Val, stepping forward one on the Prince's right hand and
one on his left, acquitted themselves well in the first fight with the
initially disorganized foe.
There came a brief lull. Panting, Mark gave his orders: "We
go forward again. I must find Wood! Whatever Swords are here will be with
him."
Advancing boldly, pressing their initial advantage, he and his
escort penetrated to one of the central tents. Ripping open fabric with a
Blade, the Prince cursed on realizing that his chief antagonist was not here
either.
But a moment later, to their joy, the three attackers discovered
in this tent a pair of important prisoners. Zoltan and Yambu were both
stretched out on narrow beds, eyes staring and bodies rigid, obviously under
some magical constraint. Any humans who might have been stationed to guard them
had already taken to their heels. In only moments the Prince and his flankers
were able to set the pair free.
Into the right hand of each prisoner, briefly and in turn, Mark
pressed the hilt of the Sword Shieldbreaker. This instantly and permanently
broke the grip of the magic Wood had bound them with.
Zoltan, on being released from imprisonment, sat up with a
strangled gasp of relief, to see Valdemar and Ben before him, standing one on
each side of a black-eyed mermaid. Zoltan understood that he was facing the
Sword of Stealth, when a moment later the mermaid's image turned into that of
Wood himself, and then into a nameless, shrouded figure of horror, a memory
from nightmares of his childhood.
Whatever horror the Lady Yambu might have experienced in her
captivity, or on waking to see Mark wielding Sightblinder, she bore the burden
well.
* * *
Less than a kilometer away, the young woman who had once been
Tigris was still lying injured, half delirious, inside some peasant's
half-roofless and long abandoned hut.
Fearing equally for her own survival and for her lover's safety,
Delia drifted in and out of feverish sleep. In her lucid moments the young
woman hoped and prayed to all the gods that the two of them would be able to
get away from this seemingly endless conflict, to the peaceful vineyard Val had
so proudly described to her.
Almost Delia felt that she already knew that place, that she and
Valdemar had already lived there together. In dreams she saw the little house,
the garden, a green and summery vision of delight, a paradise once possessed,
now gone again and unattainable.
In her pain and distress she had lost track of how much time had
passed since Val had left her here alone. Many hours, certainly. She was afraid
it had been days. She feared, in her state of suffering, that the man she loved
had suffered some horrible fate. Or, worse, that he had cruelly deserted her.
Zoltan, still suffering somewhat from Wood's maltreatment, could
provide little relevant information about Wood, nor could he guess what Swords
the Ancient One might hold. But Yambu was able to confirm that Wayfinder had
been here, in this camp, and in Wood's hands.
Where the Ancient One was now, or whether he had with him that
Sword, or any other, she did not know.
Mark assumed that Wood had carried the Sword of Wisdom away.
Now, in the center of the camp, Mark and his augmented bodyguard
faced a development the Prince had not really expected—a carefully prepared
series of enemy counterattacks by a surrounding composite force of armed and unarmed men,
specially trained to fight against Shieldbreaker.
At the next pause in the action, Mark suspected, and his panting
friends agreed, that the Ancient One must be somewhere near at hand, directing
these attacks.
The beleagured handful craned their necks, trying to spot their
enemy in the clouded sky. The Prince grunted: "He'll be riding on a
griffin, or I'm surprised. He'll be too shrewd to mount a demon, when he expects
me to be present."
Before anyone could answer him, there sounded from somewhere in
the distance what Mark and his compatriots could recognize as a Tasavaltan
horn.
"That's Karel, thank all the gods."
"Let us hope some cavalry is with him."
Karel himself, riding forward with a courage matched only by his
physical clumsiness, doing his best to keep up with the cavalry, had been able
to determine with fair accuracy, despite Wood's attempts at concealment, just
where the enemy camp had been established. Some of the Tasavaltan scouting
birds had been deceived by enemy magic, and others temporarily outfought by
reptiles. But the uncle of the Prince and Princess could also determine, even
without much help from feathered friends, that Mark was now in the vicinity.
He signalled to the cavalry commander to sound the charge.
In moments the Tasavaltan mounted troopers, supporting and
supported by a truly formidable magician, were heavily engaged with the forces
surrounding Prince Mark and his small bodyguard.
Drawing a deep breath, Mark commanded an advance, toward their
allies.
There were plenty of fallen weapons about with which the former
prisoners could arm themselves.
They advanced.
Meanwhile Wood, still carrying Wayfinder, was airborne. Mounted
on his own especially large and vicious griffin, he circled above the fighting,
dispatching relays of reptiles with urgent messages to his officers below. He
sent other winged couriers with orders to speed the advance of his additional
ground forces already marching to the scene.
What had once been an orderly camp was now a ruined, trampled
field of mud, fallen bodies and ruined and discarded weapons, and collapsed
tents. Time and again, the Prince's personal bodyguard saved his life by
beating off unarmed attack. He, and the unmatchable power in his right hand,
rescued them in turn. The onslaught of the Tasavaltan cavalry had relieved
some of the pressure from surrounding forces, but still Mark and his handful in
the center had all that they could handle. So far, thanks to skill and luck and
the weapons of the gods, none of them were more than slightly wounded.
Wood, hovering on his chosen griffin, darting away and coming
back, now and then swooping low enough to get a good look at the figure he knew
must really be Mark, sometimes perceived instead a man he recognized as the
Emperor. Again the Ancient One beheld a shadowy figure, insubstantial yet
angular, somehow almost mechanical, something out of the Old World. He knew
that the Sword of Stealth was tricking him into seeing Ardneh.
Though Shieldbreaker had prevented Wood from using Wayfinder
effectively to plan his counterattack on Mark, the Sword of Wisdom continued to
be effective against Mark's allies, Karel and the Tasavaltan cavalry. The trouble
was, as long as Mark himself was on the scene, Wood could not spare the time to accomplish their
destruction.
The next time he dove his mount low enough to get a close look at
the fighting around Mark, the Ancient One beheld, to his own freezing horror,
the hulking, foul image of the king-demon Orcus—a being now ages dead, along
with Ardneh his great antagonist.
Putting aside the initial shock of this perception, Wood summoned
up his intelligence and will, gritted his teeth, and stubbornly denied what
both his eyes and his best magical perception were assuring him to be true.
That was Mark. And with the two Swords, Mark was winning.
A number of Wood's people, who as a rule were more afraid of their
master than of any other conceivable enemy—or at least of Mark—fought like
fanatics.
But on encountering the armed Prince of Tasavalta, a majority of
these unfortunates perceived Mark as Wood, and they saw confronting them a
figure even more terrible in its wrath than the original. And the very terror
with which the Ancient One had sought to bind his fighters to him, resulted in
their defection.
Yambu had been struck down, and was out of action for the time
being.
Those of the Prince's friends who were still fighting beside him
could only hope, if they should lose sight of Mark for a moment, that when they
again saw a figure they took to be him, it was not really that of Wood or
another enemy instead.
For Wood, snarling rage was giving way to a kind of calm. He
prepared to risk everything on a single move.
"My plan is failing, because my fools down there lack wit and
nerve to execute it properly. Very well, then. I see I must grapple with him
myself."
Wood, meaning to hurl himself unarmed on Mark, reined his griffin
round to circle in a wide loop, gaining momentum for a final charge. Meaning to
hurl himself unarmed on Mark, he began divesting himself of weapons right and
left—but stopped when he came to Wound-healer and Wayfinder, sheathed at his
side.
"Not yet. Both Swords may have to go, but only at the last
moment, when I'll know that he still has Shield-breaker in hand."
Mark's tiring riding-beast tripped and fell, hurling him violently
to the ground. Though protected against all enemy weapons, Mark had been
knocked out of the saddle by accident.
The Prince lay temporarily stunned.
Zoltan, being closest to him on his right side, grabbed up
Shieldbreaker.
Val, who was in the best position on the other side, took up
Sightblinder, which had fallen from Mark's left hand.
Moments later, having seen from a distance how their Prince went
down, Karel and some of the Tasavaltan cavalry attacked fiercely, and broke
through to surround and defend him.
In the double confusion of a melee and a joyful reunion, Valdemar
was easily able, even though he lacked Sightblinder, to step away without being
noticed.
The Ancient One, circling away momentarily, failed to see Mark go
down.
Coming back, swooping very low to the ground for a final attack,
Wood observed only a confused struggle in the place where he expected Mark to
be. The Ancient One's hopes rose—perhaps his plan of attack had succeeded
after all.
The griffin, great wings blurring with its speed, roared low above the struggling
throng, sustaining what to it were minor wounds from Tasavaltan stones and
arrows.
Closing swiftly on the knot of central activity where Mark must
be, Wood saw Zoltan standing in the Tasavaltan ranks.
Shieldbreaker would be down on the ground there, somewhere
underneath that scramble. The direct attack on Mark would have to wait for his
next pass—or if the Prince was already slain, such a desperate tactic would be,
after all, unnecessary. But here was another choice target, and this run would
not be wasted. Swerving his mount slightly at full speed to meet the altered
target, the Ancient One swung Wayfinder with all his strength against
Zoltan—and the world seemed to explode with tremendous violence in Wood's face.
The shocked griffin literally somersaulted in midair, and the body
of its rider went hurtling from the saddle. Some of the onlookers were
quick-witted enough to realize almost immediately that Wood must have swung
Wayfinder against Shieldbreaker, and that the Sword of Wisdom had been
dazzlingly destroyed.
In every quarter of the field, increasing numbers of enemy
soldiers were panicking into flight. No matter how thoroughly their secret
training had prepared them for a fight against two overwhelming Swords, the
reality was overwhelming, and they found themselves unable to stand against it.
The surviving Tasavaltan troopers, taking heart from the fall of
their archenemy, fought all the harder.
The physical combat flared and receded and flared again. The
fighting was fierce, the slaughter great, the number of fallen in blue and
silver much larger than those in blue and green. Wood had been determined to
wear down his foe by numbers, if he could win in no other way.
*
* *
Mark, still sprawled on the ground, but now fiercely protected by
his friends and his surrounding troops, was starting to regain consciousness.
Part of his trouble was due to the strain of carrying two such
Swords into battle at the same time. Karel now was at the Prince's side,
mumbling a reminder of his own warnings on the subject; but at the same time
the elderly wizard protected Mark and all the Tasavaltan forces against
anything that Wood's lesser magicians were able to try against them.
Valdemar, his perceptions enhanced by having Sight-blinder in his
grip, went running toward the place where he had seen Wood's plummeting body
strike the earth. The crashing weight had half-collapsed a large tent in an
area of the battlefield now otherwise deserted.
Inside the standing portion of the tent, Valdemar discovered that
the falling body, half-armored in bright metal, had torn its way right through
the fabric as it came down. The corpse lay on its back, rain falling on the
face, the whole head looking hideously altered from the human. The terrible
wound of Shieldbreaker's latest riposte showed plainly in the center of the
chest, where armor of steel and high magic had been shredded as effortlessly as
skin.
The Sword of Mercy still reposed in its sheath at the waist of the
dead wizard.
The proof of the identity of this deformed and otherwise nearly
unrecognizable corpse was in its right hand: dead fingers still gripping the
black hilt of what had been the Sword of Wisdom, the hilt itself still bearing
a stump of broken blade, once-magnificent metal dulled and lifeless now.
After the briefest of hesitations, the young man identified the
sheathed and intact Sword beyond any doubt: he did this by drawing it forth and using it to
treat his own small injuries recently received in battle.
Then Valdemar, working quietly and quickly and unobserved inside
this half-collapsed pavilion, wrapped up Woundhealer in tent fabric, having
used the blade itself to cut a piece to size. And then he promptly made off
with it, trusting to Sightblinder in his right hand to afford him an unimpeded
exit from the battlefield.
Valdemar had no trouble justifying this action to himself. The fight
seemed to have been won, or at least was in a lull, with every prospect for an
eventual Tasavaltan victory.
He told himself that he had done his share, and more than his
share, of the necessary fight against the evil folk who would have hounded Delia
to her death or worse— their glorious enemy, the Prince of Tasavalta, was still
alive, now protectively surrounded by his own fiercely defensive troops, all of
them, unlike Valdemar, trained fighters.
Overshadowing all other considerations, of course, was the fact
that Delia desperately needed help, the help that he could bring her now—and
that he feared might never reach her, if he were to trust the Sword of Mercy to
someone else.
With both leaders now fallen, a lull had fallen over the field of
combat. The enemy had retreated to regroup, or were perhaps recovering from a
rout, or else they were following the Tasavaltans who in turn were trying to
retreat with their injured Prince. Val could not immediately see just what was
happening, and in fact he did not greatly care. He moved out boldly, armed with
the Sword of Stealth.
Making steady progress, not looking back, he separated himself
from whatever was left of the battle. He was going to bring help and healing to
the woman he loved.
He told himself as he trudged away that after he and Delia were
safely out of trouble, the Prince of Tasavalta would be welcome to the Sword—to
all the Swords.
The Prince had not seemed a bad man, but Valdemar really put
little faith in Mark's promises of help—obviously the Prince was going to be
fully engaged in his own problems for some indefinite time to come.
Val could not blame him. In Mark's place, he would have done the
same.
Presently the fighting flared up again around the Prince and his
close companions, so that their search for the now-missing Valdemar, just
tentatively begun, had to be abandoned for a time.
Zoltan and Ben exchanged guesses as to whether Valdemar had been
killed. Of course there was nothing to be done about it if he had been.
Men had been dispatched to look for Wood's body, for he might have
been carrying a Sword or two. The corpse of the fallen wizard was discovered,
and, with the help of Karel, recognized. But no unbroken Swords were with it.
Sightblinder was gone from the field, but Shieldbreaker in
Zoltan's hand fought on, with devastating effect. Any minions of Wood whose
morale had survived the loss of their leader, and who were still misguided
enough to strike directly, with material weapons, at the holder of the Sword of
Force, saw their spears and swords and missiles shattered and broken, and they
themselves were slaughtered when they came within range of Shieldbreaker's
matchless force.
Similarly, any who tried to attack that person with magic saw
their spells, too, broken by the Sword of Force. Some minor wizards in Wood's
camp expired with startling visual effects.
And again and yet again, cleverly trained and fanatically led, one frantic
would-be wrestler after another cast down his weapons and tried to close with the
figure assumed to be Mark.
Again and again that man's new bodyguard beat back these attempts
with ordinary blades, cudgels, skill and strength.
VALDEMAR, struggling against exhaustion after the prolonged
fighting, kept moving as fast as he could, trudging on through rain and muck.
He snatched brief periods of rest, when quivering knees and faintness told him
that he must.
In the first stage of his journey, carrying two Swords, he passed
many wounded, numbers of them crying out pitiably. Setting his jaw, he closed
his ears to the sounds of pain and carried Woundhealer wrapped and hidden past
the victims of the fighting, telling himself that he had already done more than
his share for the Tasavaltan cause. At moments when he closed his eyes, every
groan of pain seemed to be sounding in Delia's voice. He kept on moving as
quickly and steadily as he could, back toward his beloved.
When Valdemar was half a kilometer from the camp, he thought he
heard the sounds of battle started up behind him yet again. He did not look
back, but kept going, and the noises slowly faded once more.
Resting only when his weariness compelled, Valdemar traveled for
about an hour before coming in sight of the abandoned hut where he had left
Delia. Running the last few meters, calling her name, he heard a welcome
answer, and found her inside waiting for him.
He remembered to put Sightblinder away before he entered.
Delia, lying almost exactly where Val had left her, cried out to
him in weak but joyous welcome.
Woundhealer drawn, he rushed forward to his woman's side.
Minutes later, the couple were resting and eating, preparatory to
starting their long journey to Valdemar's vineyard, when a dull shadow fell
across the doorway, blocking the dim light of the rainy day. Val looked up to
glimpse a massive figure clad in Wood's blue and silver livery.
The young man had taken off his belt, and left both Swords
imprudently just out of easy reach. In the next instant Val lunged for them,
only to be felled by a stunning blow on head and shoulder.
"Good day to you both, young folks," said Sergeant Brod.
Delia hurled herself on the intruder, but Brod, laughing, easily
caught her and clamped her wrists behind her back in one of his huge hands.
He said: "Things have gone a little wrong with the Master's
magic—but I see the spell he gave me to find you here is still working just
fine."
But on taking a good look at the woman he had just caught, who
continued to squirm and hiss and scratch, Brod had some difficulty in believing
this ordinary-looking female had once been Tigris—even though he had never had
a good look at the enchantress. It seemed to the Sarge that Wood's long-range
punishment had been devastatingly effective. In fact, if Wood had not thoughtfully
provided him with a certain magical means of identification, he would probably
have failed to recognize her at all.
Val lay on the floor of the hut groaning, by all indications
unable to move.
The Sarge, making sure he had Delia in a safe grip, bent over to
get his first good look at the weapons on the earthen floor, the tools Val had
just been trying to reach. He was astonished and momentarily distracted by what
he saw.
"Swords!—by all the gods!"
Shifting his grip on Delia's arms, he muttered: "Let's jus'
see which ones we got... " And bent over, meaning to look closely at the
black hilts projecting from the swordbelt.
It was now or never. Val, seeing double, his head and neck aflame
with pain, a deadly weakness dragging all his limbs, summoned up what strength
he could and hurled himself forward, grappling Brod around the knees.
Brod struck viciously at his assailant, stretching the already
injured man out helpless on the floor. But he had to let go of Delia in the
process.
In the moment when Brod was busy defending himself from Val, Delia
managed to pull one of her hands free. Diving to reach the Swords, she was able
to pull Sightblinder from its sheath.
With the same movement of her arm, she threw the weapon as far as
she could, so it went flying into a far comer of the hut.
When Brod instinctively released her and went plunging after the
Sword, she stuck out a leg and tripped him, so that he came down with a slam
that drove the breath out of his body. A moment later she had seized
Woundhealer and without hesitation thrust its bright blade straight into her
lover's chest.
The Sarge, regaining his feet and lunging forward once more after
the tantalizingly available Sword of Stealth, had almost got his fingers on its
hilt when the great weight of Valdemar's body, once more fully functional,
landed on him from behind. Skidding forward with Val's momentum, both men went
crashing out through the old hut's flimsy wall.
Wrestling hand to hand, the two went rolling over and over. Brod's
effort to knee his opponent failed. Valdemar's huge arms quivered, straining
against muscles every bit as powerful as his own.
Suddenly the Sarge stiffened, looking over Valdemar's shoulder at
a terrible male figure that towered above them both. The figure's blue eyes
glared, its empty hands were extended in the gesture of a wizard about to loose
a blasting curse.
Valdemar saw nothing of this apparition. He only felt Brod's body
convulse, and heard him scream out: "Master Wood!" before he retched
up blood and died.
Turning, Valdemar beheld only Delia. He saw her in her true form,
for she had let go the hilt of Sightblinder, whose blade remained embedded
deeply in Brod's heart.
Val, struggling to his feet, recalled once urging Ben to use
Woundhealer to save this very man. And Val muttered now: "No. No more.
You've had enough chances."
Tethered at a little distance from the hut they found Brod's
riding-beast, along with a spare mount saddled and ready. The saddlebags of
both animals contained food and other useful items.
"He said something, didn't he, about having been sent to
bring me back?" Delia shuddered.
"It wasn't you they really wanted, love. It was that other
woman, Tigris."
"I don't want to hear about her, or think about her."
In less than half an hour the pair, wishing with all their souls
to put the horrors of their last few days behind them, were hastening away from
the scene of their most recent struggle.
Delia, her spirits risen again with the return and triumph of her
lover, began to play with Woundhealer, giggling and marveling at the inability
of this sharp Blade to cut her fingers off, or even scratch them.
How different this Sword from the one that had so treacherously
hurt Val's fingers earlier!
Watching her perform such tricks gave Val the shivers, and he
ordered her to stop. For once in a meek mood, she obeyed without a murmur.
Valdemar noted also, with belated apprehension, that the Sword of
Mercy had only partially, if at all, restored Delia's memory. He supposed that
Wood's expunging of her evil experiences, both as perpetrator and victim, would
not be construed as an injury.
Somehow, out of renewed spirits and talk of a future that suddenly
seemed clear, the topic of marriage came under discussion.
The urge for wedlock came with the greatest intensity upon
Valdemar. His sense of propriety, an innate conservatism in matters of society
and morals, was really stronger than Delia's.
Delia wondered aloud if she was too young for matrimony, and
whether she ought to take such a step without consulting her mother.
"Would that be possible?" her companion asked, vaguely
surprised.
"No. No, I don't see how. I don't know if she's still
alive."
Valdemar was in a mood to insist on a ceremony. "Otherwise it
would be shameful to continue to take advantage of you in this way."
"Is that what you call it? Take advantage'? Come, take advantage of me
again!"
* * *
On the next morning the couple awakened to idyllic sunshine. From
the state of the morning sky it seemed likely that, for a change, a whole day
might be going to pass without rain.
"Delia?"
"Yes?"
"I think perhaps the most proper thing for us to do is to
perform some kind of wedding ceremony ourselves."
Chewing on a grass blade, the young woman thought over this idea.
"Yes, we can do that if you like."
Having won his point, the youth still felt it necessary to explain
his thoughts and feelings. "Otherwise the difficulty, as I see it, is
going to be in finding someone qualified to marry us.
"Even when we get back to my vineyard, there'll really be no
one. The nearest village is about a day's walk distant. And I don't know if
there's anyone in that village I'd want to perform my wedding ceremony."
"That's too bad." But in fact Delia did not seem very
much upset.
Val continued: "A White Temple priest or priestess would be
the best, I think. Maybe someday we can get to a White Temple somewhere. I pray
to Ardneh sometimes. Actually I pray to Ardneh a great deal. He's not dead
like the other gods."
Delia was now listening carefully, wide-eyed and nodding. As far
as her companion could tell, she was accepting everything he said as truth.
That made him feel the importance of weighing his words carefully.
He added moodily: "I could almost wish that we still had the
other Sword. Wayfinder would show us where to find the right priest or
official."
"Is it that important to you, finding someone to say words
over us? We could pretend we still have the Finding-Sword."
Half in jest, half seriously, Valdemar closed his eyes, held out his hands gripping
an invisible hilt, imagining or pretending that he still had the Sword of
Wisdom.
He said: "Sword, if you can do so without keeping me longer
from my vineyard, or putting us in danger—show me the way to someone who could
marry us."
Of course there was really no weight tugging at his hands, no
bright metal to point and give him a direction.
But Delia's fingers were pulling at his sleeve. Opening his eyes,
Valdemar discovered that they were no longer alone.
Standing on the other side of the little clearing, regarding them
in a friendly way, was a middle-sized, dark-haired, thirtyish man wearing boots
and practical trousers of pilgrim gray, his upper body covered by a short white
robe which made him look like a White Temple priest on pilgrimage. He appeared
to be unarmed.
Valdemar scrambled to his feet. "Greetings to you, sir. I am
Valdemar, and this is Delia."
The man nodded his head briskly. His eyes were faintly merry.
"And greetings to you, in Ardneh's name. I am... the man you see before
you."
"Sir?"
"The truth is that I have taken a certain vow. For a time I
may not speak my real name."
Delia appeared to find this interesting. "A vow to a god?
Which one?"
The other shrugged slightly, a deprecating gesture. "A vow to
myself, that's all. You might call me Brother White, if it is easier for you to
call me something."
"Brother White—" Valdemar was suddenly anxious.
"Are you a priest of the White Temple, as your robe suggests?"
The newcomer nodded in acknowledgement. "I am. Among other
things."
"Then ... Reverend Brother? Would you be willing to perform a
certain ceremony for us, sir?"
"That is what you both want?"
Delia and Val looked at each other, then said together: "It
is."
"Then it would please me to be your witness, if you will
perform the ceremony for yourselves."
Valdemar looked again at Delia, then agreed. He was beginning to
have the distinct impression that he had known this man somewhere before, but
he could not recall where or when.
And then, abruptly, a hint of insight came to Valdemar. He asked:
"Sir, do you know the Lady Yambu?"
"I do."
"Then—sir, are you, possibly, he who is called the Emperor?
She spoke to me once of such a man, who was once her husband."
"Indeed I am." The answer was very matter-of-fact,
neither a boast nor an apology.
Val didn't know exactly what to say next. At last he announced:
"Sir—the Blue Temple covets your treasure."
"I'm sure they do." The Emperor smiled, then looked
almost wistful for a moment. "But I doubt they know how to get at
it."
Delia's thoughts were elsewhere. "If we are to be married,"
she murmured thoughtfully, "I wish I had a new dress to wear." There
had been nothing of the kind in Brod's saddlebags.
"Let me see," said the Emperor. And he bowed to Delia
slightly, as if asking her permission for what he was about to do. Then he took
her by one hand and turned her, spun her gently, considerately, as if he were
the skilled partner of the world's most graceful dancer. "White? Perhaps
white would be best. Why, I see nothing in the least wrong with what you are
wearing now." And with the spinning, in the time it took young legs to
dance a step,
her stained, frayed garments changed, became a dress, a gown, of purest ivory.
Val would have expected a White Temple priest presiding at a
wedding to read from some kind of a book, but instead the Emperor—or Brother
White—simply took each of the young people by the hand, held their hands
clasped together in his own, and asked them questions about their commitment to
each other.
The girl became very solemn for a time when this rather
ordinary-looking man looked at her, and spoke to her and to Valdemar.
The setting was a pleasant place, and, true to the morning's
promise, for once it was not raining.
When the ceremony had been concluded, and Valdemar had kissed his
bride, he turned to Brother White and said: "Sir, we are young and
healthy. We intend to avoid war in the future—so we have no need of either of
these Swords that we are carrying. Or, rather, others have greater need of them
than we do. And we have had proof, more proof than we needed, that the
possession of such treasure can bring disaster as well as healing. So—I want to
give them to you."
Brother White listened carefully, and nodded. "A noble gift,
and I thank you. And I am proud to accept. Still, others have greater need than
I. So my acceptance must have one condition."
"Yes sir?"
"That you carry these Swords, which are now mine, with you a
little longer. Hand them over to the next person you meet who appears to be in
need of their powers."
Valdemar and Delia nodded.
The Emperor waved them on their way.
Very well pleased to be formally united as man and wife, Delia and
Valdemar continued their progress homeward on Brod's pair of riding-beasts—not hurrying now,
but not wasting any time. She had noticed, with no great surprise, that as soon
as she and her husband were alone again her wedding dress had turned into
clothes very much resembling her own garments, but not worn or grimy.
They pressed on. At times when the way ahead still seemed long and
difficult, Valdemar reminded his new bride and himself that he had come on
foot, in no very great number of days, from his home to this region; and that
they therefore ought to have no great trouble walking home again. Especially
not with the Sword of Stealth to guard them on their way.
The land around them had become more hospitable, and there were
increasing signs of human habitation, and Valdemar had begun to ride with
Sightblinder sheathed instead of drawn. Perhaps he had also begun to lose a
little of his alertness. He was halfway across a narrow bridge, spanning a
small stream, when he raised his eyes to see Ben of Purkinje, armed and
mounted, waiting for him on the west bank.
Val slowed his riding-beast, and put a hand to the black hilt at
his side.
He hoped devoutly that Delia would know what to do—to stay in
concealment where she was, back on the east bank. They had not yet entirely
foresaken caution as they traveled.
The bridge was a single great log, carved flat on its upper
surface. The brisk stream splashed and gurgled underneath. Speaking a little
more loudly than was strictly necessary, Valdemar called out: "Ben.
Surprised to meet you here."
The ugly face smiled faintly. "Can't say I'm that surprised
to meet you. Matter of fact, a lot of us have out been looking for you—and for a couple of
Swords—and for a certain woman—ever since we won the battle."
"I was sure our side had it won. Else I would not have
left." Even as Valdemar spoke the words, he wondered if they were strictly
true. Urging his mount slowly forward, he halted again when he came close to
Ben, who with his riding-beast was almost blocking the west end of the span.
Then Val looked around. "Are you alone?"
"I wanted to talk to you about that," Ben said mildly,
and reined his mount back slightly from the narrow path, giving Val plenty of
room to pass. Val urged his own steed forward. A moment later, just as Val was
passing, Ben seized him round the waist, and dragged him from the saddle,
gripping him fiercely to keep him from drawing any weapon.
Delia came cantering briskly across the narrow bridge with
Sightblinder raised to defend her husband.
At the sound of hoofbeats, Ben looked up; and what he saw
momentarily paralyzed him.
Before he could recover, Val had knocked him out.
When Ben came to himself—with the feeling of just having made a
magically quick and complete recovery— he found himself sitting beside the
little path. Valdemar, a Sword in his huge right hand, was standing looking
down at him.
Obviously the couple were packed up and in the act of moving on;
the sound of a woman's voice came from somewhere just out of Ben's sight around
the next bend of the path, as if she were gently fussing with a couple of
riding-beasts.
Ben's own mount was waiting patiently, just beside him.
"Where is she?" Ben leaped to his feet, looking around.
"Who?"
"Ariane. I saw her here ..." His voice trailed off, as
some version of the truth dawned on him.
Valdemar shook his huge head. He threw his weapon to the ground,
where metal clashed on metal. "One of the two Swords that we are leaving
you is Sightblinder."
"That you are leaving me?" Ben inquired stupidly.
Following Val's gesture, he looked down uncomprehendingly. Two magnificent
black-hilted blades lay crossed on the ground in front of him, waiting to be
picked up.
"Yes," said Valdemar. "We are leaving them with
you. Chiefly because of a promise we have made. And one of these Swords, I
repeat, is Sightblinder."
"I ought to have expected that."
"Yes ... do you understand now? Whatever woman you thought
you saw before I knocked you out was never actually here."
"Ah."
"Yes. The woman with me is my wife. And we're leaving both
Swords with you... does the Lady Yambu still live?"
"She does," said Ben slowly. "And the Prince
too."
"Good. I hoped Mark was going to survive. Heal them, and heal
Mark's Princess."
"I will," said Ben, and let himself sit down again,
heavily, in the grass. His legs, so recently touched by the Sword of Healing,
were as strong and healthy as they were ever going to be, and yet his sitting
down was a collapse. He was going to be all right. He was all right. But some
losses even Woundhealer could not restore.
Ariane was still gone. Gone forever.
At a little distance he could hear Valdemar mounting, and then the
two animals moving away, accompanied by the voices of their riders. But for
some considerable time Ben of Purkinje only sat where the givers of gifts had
left him, staring at his magnificent paired Swords.